Selected quad for the lemma: blood_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
blood_n body_n bread_n transubstantiation_n 7,578 5 11.1962 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A56679 Mensa mystica; or A discourse concerning the sacrament of the Lords Supper In which the ends of its institution are so manifested; our addresses to it so directed; our behaviour there, and afterward, so composed, that we may not lose the benefits which are to be received by it. By Simon Patrick, D.D. minsiter of Gods Word at Batersea in Surrey. Patrick, Simon, 1626-1707. 1667 (1667) Wing P822A; ESTC R215619 205,852 511

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

food_n of_o the_o foul_a and_o profane_v mouth_n and_o by_o use_v a_o multitude_n of_o ceremony_n they_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o take_v the_o mind_n off_o from_o all_o substantial_a exercise_n the_o ancient_n i_o be_o sure_a understand_v not_o the_o new_a language_n of_o the_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o though_o they_o will_v suborn_v those_o worthy_n to_o speak_v against_o their_o mind_n and_o conscience_n on_o their_o side_n yet_o we_o find_v that_o they_o call_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n figure_n or_o symbol_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n dionysius_n the_o areopagite_n or_o that_o ancient_a writer_n who_o pass_v under_o his_o name_n call_v they_o most_o frequent_o hierach_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d *_o in_o cap._n 3._o eccles_n hierach_n symbol_n image_n antitype_n sensible_a thing_n receive_v instead_o of_o thing_n intelligible_a and_o maximus_n in_o his_o scholion_n upon_o he_o interpret_n what_o a_o symbol_n be_v in_o his_o language_n say_v it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n a_o sensible_a thing_n which_o we_o partake_v of_o instead_o of_o a_o spiritual_a as_o for_o example_n bread_n and_o wine_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o immaterial_a divine_a nourishment_n and_o gladness_n and_o so_o macarius_n call_v it_o 27._o homil._n 27._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o figure_n and_o representation_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o say_v that_o he_o who_o partake_v of_o the_o visible_a bread_n do_v spiritual_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o he_o that_o will_v may_v repair_v to_o theodoret_n who_o live_v in_o late_a time_n and_o he_o shall_v tell_v he_o that_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mystical_a representation_n and_o that_o their_o nature_n be_v not_o change_v no_o more_o than_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n cease_v to_o be_v flesh_n now_o that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o in_o his_o comment_n upon_o the_o 1_o corinth_n 11.26_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d dialog_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o apostle_n use_v these_o word_n till_o he_o come_v because_o there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o symbol_n of_o his_o body_n when_o his_o body_n itself_o shall_v appear_v the_o name_n of_o antiquity_n make_v a_o great_a sound_n in_o their_o mouth_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o therefore_o let_v the_o reader_n remember_v that_o there_o be_v many_o ancient_a error_n as_o well_o as_o truth_n if_o they_o have_v follow_v the_o ancient_n in_o their_o novel_a doctrine_n they_o be_v rather_o the_o old_a heretic_n 9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n vide_fw-la irenaeum_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 9_o than_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o have_v be_v well_o observe_v by_o some_o of_o our_o divine_n that_o marcus_n a_o magician_n be_v note_v by_o irenaeus_n for_o counterfeit_v to_o consecrate_v in_o a_o eucharistial_a manner_n cup_n of_o water_n mix_v with_o wine_n to_o a_o strange_a purpose_n he_o extend_v say_v he_o the_o word_n of_o invocation_n to_o a_o very_a great_a length_n and_o then_o he_o make_v the_o liquor_n in_o the_o cup_n seem_v of_o a_o purple_a or_o bloody_a colour_n his_o follower_n believe_v that_o the_o divine_a grace_n do_v drop_v down_o some_o of_o its_o own_o blood_n into_o the_o cup_n at_o his_o request_n and_o all_o that_o be_v present_a be_v very_o greedy_a to_o taste_v of_o this_o cup_n that_o the_o same_o grace_n which_o he_o call_v down_o may_v shower_v itself_o upon_o they_o likewise_o i_o can_v little_o doubt_v but_o that_o this_o cup_n over_o which_o he_o give_v thanks_o be_v a_o counterfeit_n of_o that_o which_o the_o sound_a christian_n drink_v of_o from_o who_o these_o man_n be_v apostatise_v and_o that_o he_o may_v gain_v great_a applause_n by_o his_o follower_n he_o will_v make_v they_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v more_o devout_a than_o any_o and_o can_v give_v they_o more_o than_o the_o christian_n pretend_v to_o do_v even_o the_o very_a blood_n of_o christ_n itself_o which_o the_o romanist_n now_o boast_v they_o have_v and_o therein_o excel_v we_o but_o we_o be_v content_a with_o what_o holy_a man_n then_o enjoy_v and_o let_v they_o take_v heed_n that_o they_o follow_v not_o worse_a example_n i_o be_o sure_a theodoret_n in_o his_o second_o dialogue_n bring_v in_o a_o wild_a conceit_a man_n speak_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o they_o do_v 24._o cap._n 24._o the_o affirmation_n of_o that_o fantastic_a be_v this_o that_o christ_n humane_a nature_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o the_o divine_a his_o argument_n for_o it_o be_v this_o as_o the_o element_n or_o symbol_n or_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v one_o thing_n before_o the_o invocation_n of_o the_o priest_n but_o after_o invocation_n be_v change_v and_o make_v another_o so_o the_o lord_n body_n after_o his_o ascension_n be_v change_v into_o a_o divine_a substance_n though_o before_o it_o be_v not_o hereupon_o the_o father_n say_v you_o be_v catch_v in_o your_o onw_n net_n for_o the_o symbol_n do_v not_o go_v out_o of_o their_o proper_a nature_n but_o remain_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o former_a substance_n wherein_o they_o be_v let_v the_o reader_n then_o judge_v with_o who_o they_o speak_v and_o who_o be_v the_o master_n of_o our_o language_n and_o assertion_n and_o let_v he_o take_v heed_n how_o he_o leave_v our_o communion_n where_o he_o have_v the_o holy_a bread_n and_o the_o cup_n both_o whereas_o they_o something_o like_o the_o manichee_n of_o old_a will_v not_o let_v the_o people_n drink_v of_o the_o cup._n but_o let_v they_o believe_v as_o much_o as_o they_o will_v so_o they_o will_v but_o quiet_o suffer_v we_o to_o believe_v as_o we_o see_v cause_n let_v they_o practice_v as_o they_o please_v if_o it_o will_v do_v they_o any_o good_a we_o doubt_v not_o but_o we_o believe_v and_o practice_v enough_o to_o the_o receive_n of_o as_o great_a benefit_n as_o they_o can_v enjoy_v i_o confess_v i_o can_v be_v angry_a with_o they_o for_o believe_v more_o than_o i_o can_v do_v but_o i_o desire_v they_o will_v not_o be_v angry_a at_o we_o but_o rather_o pity_v we_o that_o we_o can_v extend_v our_o faith_n so_o far_o if_o a_o man_n will_v say_v that_o snow_n be_v nothing_o but_o freeze_a milk_n which_o drop_v from_o the_o sky_n much_o good_a may_v it_o do_v he_o with_o his_o conceit_n only_o let_v he_o not_o impose_v the_o same_o belief_n on_o other_o who_o intend_v not_o to_o trouble_v he_o for_o his_o fancy_n and_o if_o they_o will_v believe_v that_o wine_n be_v the_o very_a blood_n of_o christ_n i_o desire_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v suffer_v the_o least_o harm_n for_o this_o opinion_n but_o let_v they_o not_o damn_v we_o because_o we_o will_v not_o put_v out_o our_o eye_n and_o deny_v our_o taste_n and_o abandon_v our_o reason_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o the_o novel_a fancy_n and_o interpretation_n that_o they_o obtrude_v upon_o we_o i_o know_v that_o if_o a_o man_n soul_n be_v not_o make_v of_o solid_a reason_n but_o consist_v of_o weak_a and_o credulous_a principle_n they_o will_v fearful_o astonish_v it_o with_o the_o dismal_a name_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n and_o such_o like_a bugbear_n word_n which_o every_o one_o apply_v as_o he_o please_v but_o considerate_a soul_n be_v grow_v wise_a than_o to_o be_v affright_v out_o of_o their_o wit_n by_o the_o noise_n of_o word_n the_o great_a engine_n of_o this_o age_n and_o they_o know_v that_o damnation_n do_v not_o depend_v upon_o man_n mouth_n for_o if_o it_o do_v i_o know_v not_o who_o shall_v go_v to_o heaven_n we_o can_v be_v so_o blind_a as_o not_o to_o see_v that_o every_o party_n arrogate_v to_o itself_o the_o glorious_a name_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o if_o we_o will_v be_v lead_v by_o sound_n we_o must_v believe_v no_o body_n know_v how_o many_o christ_n the_o name_n of_o heretic_n schismatic_a yea_o and_o of_o antichrist_n and_o babylon_n signify_v but_o little_a to_o we_o who_o hear_v they_o every_o day_n so_o careless_o apply_v that_o we_o be_v assure_v man_n know_v not_o what_o they_o say_v neither_o will_v we_o be_v amaze_v with_o sad_a relation_n of_o the_o miserable_a end_n of_o those_o who_o have_v contemn_v their_o sacrament_n for_o we_o do_v not_o allow_v that_o any_o man_n shall_v irreverent_o behave_v himself_o towards_o any_o of_o christ_n institution_n though_o there_o be_v something_o of_o man_n invention_n mix_v with_o it_o and_o we_o can_v repay_v their_o story_n of_o the_o contempt_n of_o this_o sacrament_n as_o among_o they_o administer_v with_o as_o sad_a and_o true_a relation_n concern_v those_o who_o have_v despise_v that_o which_o in_o scorn_n and_o pride_n they_o be_v please_v to_o call_v calvin_n supper_n
and_o communion_n 11.34_o v._o annot._n of_o rhemist_n in_o 1_o cor._n 11.34_o the_o memorable_a story_n which_o b._n morton_n relate_v may_v quit_v score_n with_o they_o for_o all_o of_o this_o kind_n appeal_v l._n 2._o cap._n 2._o of_o his_o protestant_n appeal_v there_o be_v in_o s._n john_n college_n in_o cambridge_n dr._n whittaker_n be_v then_o master_n one_o booth_n a_o bachelor_n or_o art_n and_o a_o excellent_a scholar_n who_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o seducement_n by_o the_o papist_n have_v take_v the_o sacramental_a bread_n which_o he_o receive_v because_o he_o will_v not_o be_v discover_v but_o yet_o reserve_v without_o eat_v of_o it_o and_o in_o contempt_n have_v throw_v it_o over_o a_o wall_n by_o the_o remembrance_n of_o this_o sin_n afterward_o when_o his_o eye_n be_v open_v he_o be_v drive_v into_o so_o great_a remorse_n and_o anguish_n of_o soul_n that_o not_o long_o after_o he_o throw_v himself_o down_o headlong_o over_o the_o battlement_n of_o the_o chapel_n and_o within_o four_o and_o twenty_o hour_n die_v whereof_o there_o be_v many_o witness_n 6_o instit_fw-la of_o the_o sacrament_n l._n 2._o cap._n 2._o seci_fw-la 6_o yea_o this_o right_a reverend_a person_n say_v in_o another_o book_n that_o he_o see_v this_o thing_n which_o now_o from_o he_o i_o have_v relate_v and_o it_o may_v put_v some_o in_o mind_n of_o what_o befall_v the_o donatist_n who_o cast_v of_o it_o to_o dog_n they_o grow_v mad_a and_o tear_v their_o own_o master_n in_o piece_n as_o unknown_a person_n but_o if_o they_o will_v persist_v to_o damn_v all_o those_o that_o be_v not_o of_o their_o way_n we_o will_v say_v to_o they_o as_o diogenes_n do_v to_o a_o heathenish_a priest_n that_o will_v persuade_v he_o to_o be_v of_o his_o order_n that_o so_o he_o may_v be_v happy_a in_o the_o other_o world_n will_v thou_o have_v i_o believe_v that_o epaminondas_n and_o other_o brave_a man_n be_v miserable_a and_o thou_o who_o be_v but_o a_o ass_n and_o do_v nothing_o worthy_a shall_v be_v happy_a because_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n be_v it_o credible_a that_o they_o who_o exercise_v all_o piety_n towards_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o sacrifice_v their_o life_n rather_o than_o consent_v to_o the_o least_o sin_n against_o they_o shall_v be_v miserable_a and_o that_o god_n will_v accept_v man_n mere_o for_o be_v of_o their_o communion_n we_o know_v upon_o what_o easy_a term_n man_n may_v go_v to_o heaven_n as_o they_o believe_v and_o they_o shall_v never_o persuade_v we_o that_o they_o who_o heart_n be_v full_a of_o god_n and_o have_v his_o image_n shine_v fair_o in_o their_o soul_n shall_v be_v the_o companion_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o accurse_a spirit_n when_o as_o they_o imagine_v man_n of_o soul_n life_n may_v get_v possession_n of_o paradise_n and_o live_v with_o saint_n and_o yet_o let_v all_o protestant_n take_v heed_n how_o they_o do_v irreverent_o behave_v themselves_o in_o participation_n of_o these_o holy_a mystery_n lest_o we_o give_v they_o occasion_n to_o say_v that_o we_o have_v nothing_o but_o common_a bread_n and_o wine_n empty_a of_o all_o sacrament_n let_v we_o as_o humble_o and_o meek_o address_v ourselves_o to_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o they_o can_v do_v who_o believe_v the_o very_a substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v there_o and_o indeed_o it_o be_v but_o natural_a to_o approach_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o reverence_n and_o devotion_n unless_o we_o be_v of_o a_o make_v different_a from_o other_o man_n who_o use_v to_o be_v affect_v with_o every_o thing_n that_o do_v but_o relate_v unto_o that_o which_o be_v dear_a unto_o they_o 〈◊〉_d l._n 5._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o man_n in_o achilles_n tatius_n who_o find_v a_o treasure_n in_o the_o ground_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n he_o do_v honour_n to_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v find_v he_o build_v a_o altar_n he_o offer_v sacrifice_n he_o crown_v that_o piece_n of_o earth_n such_o a_o passion_n of_o love_n it_o be_v i_o believe_v that_o make_v the_o ancient_a christian_n do_v honour_n to_o the_o very_a day_n of_o our_o saviour_n suffering_n to_o use_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n on_o which_o he_o suffer_v to_o look_v towards_o the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v crucify_v and_o bury_v and_o much_o more_o shall_v it_o make_v we_o high_o to_o value_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o in_o a_o serious_a reverend_a manner_n receive_v they_o as_o the_o sweet_a token_n of_o his_o love_n i_o have_v say_v the_o more_o of_o this_o here_o 7._o sect._n 7._o because_o i_o shall_v not_o fill_v the_o ensue_a treatise_n with_o any_o dispute_n and_o because_o i_o intend_v it_o shall_v be_v a_o practical_a discourse_n i_o have_v wave_v the_o controversy_n concern_v the_o person_n who_o be_v fit_a for_o to_o receive_v let_v it_o be_v sufficient_a here_o to_o say_v with_o justin_n martyr_n 2._o apolog._n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o e._n we_o suffer_v none_o to_o partake_v of_o it_o but_o he_o who_o believe_v the_o thing_n that_o we_o teach_v to_o be_v true_a and_o that_o be_v wash_v in_o baptism_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o regeneration_n and_o that_o live_v so_o as_o christ_n have_v deliver_v unto_o we_o he_o therefore_o that_o be_v baptize_v and_o instruct_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o profess_v to_o live_v according_o and_o do_v nothing_o that_o be_v destructive_a to_o this_o profession_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v reject_v from_o our_o communion_n but_o as_o of_o the_o passeover_n a_o stranger_n or_o a_o uncircumcised_a person_n though_o a_o israelite_n may_v not_o eat_v so_o neither_o may_v a_o unbaptised_a person_n or_o one_o that_o do_v not_o profess_v our_o religion_n partake_v of_o this_o supper_n and_o as_o they_o be_v to_o cast_v out_o then_o all_o unleavened_a bread_n so_o be_v we_o to_o keep_v the_o feast_n perpetual_o and_o to_o purge_v ourselves_o of_o the_o old_a leaven_n that_o we_o may_v become_v a_o new_a lump_n and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v well_o instruct_v in_o our_o duty_n i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o follow_a treatise_n first_o what_o be_v the_o end_n of_o this_o holy_a action_n second_o with_o what_o preparation_n we_o must_v approach_v to_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o and_o three_o what_o affection_n will_v best_o become_v we_o when_o we_o be_v perform_v it_o four_o how_o we_o shall_v behave_v ourselves_o afterward_o and_o last_o what_o benefit_n we_o shall_v reap_v thereby_o and_o because_o i_o know_v the_o great_a quarrel_n be_v about_o the_o life_n of_o man_n which_o be_v the_o last_o thing_n in_o justins_n word_n i_o have_v say_v something_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o discourse_n which_o may_v tend_v to_o the_o satisfy_n of_o we_o who_o be_v those_o wicked_a person_n that_o be_v to_o be_v exclude_v if_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n i_o have_v intersperse_v a_o little_a of_o the_o heathen_a learning_n 3_o sect._n 3_o and_o endeavour_v sometime_o to_o illustrate_v thing_n out_o of_o their_o custom_n it_o need_v not_o seem_v a_o wonder_n to_o any_o consider_a person_n and_o let_v i_o make_v a_o brief_a apology_n for_o it_o and_o so_o put_v a_o end_n to_o this_o preface_n i_o can_v very_o easy_o demonstrate_v that_o no_o small_a part_n of_o the_o heathenish_a mythology_n and_o divinity_n be_v fetch_v from_o the_o hebrew_a story_n and_o practice_n as_o the_o greek_a poet_n say_v of_o the_o cretan_n that_o they_o be_v always_o liar_n storm_n v._o euseb_n l_o 10_o prepar_fw-la evang_v &_o clem._n alex._n l._n 1._o storm_n so_o i_o may_v say_v of_o the_o greek_n themselves_o that_o they_o be_v always_o thief_n though_o they_o brag_v that_o all_o learning_n come_v from_o they_o yet_o in_o truth_n they_o be_v but_o like_o the_o crow_n as_o tatianus_n his_o expression_n of_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o adorn_v with_o their_o own_o feather_n but_o with_o those_o they_o have_v steal_v from_o their_o neighbour_n that_o worthy_a author_n have_v well_o observe_v towards_o the_o late_a end_n of_o his_o oration_n against_o the_o greek_n that_o they_o draw_v their_o dogmata_fw-la or_o assertion_n though_o unskilful_o from_o the_o fountain_n of_o holy_a write_n and_o have_v busy_a and_o inquisitive_a mind_n whatsoever_o they_o find_v in_o moses_n or_o other_o divine_a philosopher_n they_o endeavour_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o set_v another_o stamp_n upon_o it_o and_o make_v it_o pass_v for_o their_o own_o and_o this_o they_o do_v for_o two_o reason_n as_o he_o say_v first_o that_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o other_o to_o have_v bring_v forth_o some_o new_a thing_n that_o be_v not_o know_v before_o and_o second_o that_o what_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v
observe_v we_o must_v strive_v to_o be_v of_o the_o high_a by_o keep_v our_o affection_n alive_a that_o be_v beget_v in_o we_o p._n 330._o cap._n xvi_o eight_o direction_n for_o the_o maintain_n in_o our_o heart_n those_o resolution_n that_o be_v wrought_v in_o they_o and_o keep_v our_o heart_n in_o a_o constant_a good_a temper_n p._n 335._o sect_n iv_o of_o the_o benefit_n of_o holy_a communion_n cap._n xvii_o holy_a man_n can_v best_o tell_v themselves_o how_o sweet_a this_o feast_n be_v yet_o for_o the_o invite_a of_o other_o to_o this_o cheer_n a_o discourse_n be_v begin_v of_o the_o pleasure_n of_o it_o p._n 374._o cap._n xviii_o three_o benefit_n we_o may_v receive_v by_o it_o 1._o great_a pleasure_n which_o be_v bring_v to_o we_o sundry_a way_n 2._o great_a nourishment_n and_o strength_n as_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o three_o grace_n of_o faith_n hope_n charity_n 3._o great_a cure_n of_o our_o sickness_n and_o disease_n p._n 382._o cap._n xix_o the_o danger_n of_o come_v hither_o with_o a_o love_n to_o our_o sin_n open_v in_o several_a particular_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n not_o to_o come_v out_o of_o love_n to_o christ_n man_n excuse_n show_v to_o be_v frivolus_fw-la p._n 410._o cap._n xx._n the_o great_a excuse_n of_o many_o unmask_v which_o be_v that_o wicked_a man_n be_v permit_v to_o come_v thither_o p._n 431._o mensa_fw-la mystica_fw-la the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o unfit_o call_v by_o a_o ancient_a writer_n hierarch_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d diony_n cop_z 3._o eccles_n hierarch_n the_o garment_n that_o be_v cast_v about_o our_o saviour_n and_o it_o be_v the_o profession_n of_o divine_n to_o labour_v to_o see_v the_o naked_a face_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v most_o worthy_a our_o pain_n to_o open_v and_o reveal_v those_o secret_n that_o lie_v hide_v and_o veil_v under_o symbol_n and_o sensible_a thing_n and_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n these_o vestment_n be_v so_o thin_a and_o transparent_a that_o the_o truth_n do_v shine_v through_o they_o and_o show_v itself_o to_o well-prepared_n mind_n they_o be_v but_o like_a to_o those_o thin_a cloud_n wherein_o the_o sun_n be_v sometime_o wrap_v which_o render_v its_o body_n the_o more_o visible_a to_o our_o weak_a and_o tremble_a eye_n i_o can_v pretend_v to_o have_v converse_v much_o with_o barefaced_a truth_n yet_o have_v be_v draw_v to_o publish_v a_o few_o thought_n concern_v baptism_n i_o shall_v now_o further_o endeavour_n to_o unfold_v those_o mystery_n that_o lie_v hide_v under_o the_o cover_n of_o bread_n break_v and_o wine_n pour_v out_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n that_o man_n may_v not_o ixion-like_a embrace_v a_o mere_a cloud_n instead_o of_o god_n himself_o my_o sight_n be_v not_o so_o sharp_a as_o to_o discern_v the_o very_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o those_o form_n and_o shape_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n no_o more_o can_v that_o eagle-eyed_a author_n i_o mention_v though_o he_o think_v he_o can_v see_v as_o far_o as_o the_o celestial_a hierarchy_n which_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o one_o that_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n to_o read_v he_o yet_o i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o think_v that_o they_o be_v mere_a sign_n of_o what_o christ_n do_v for_o we_o or_o only_a representation_n of_o the_o benefit_n we_o receive_v by_o he_o but_o be_o persuade_v that_o they_o exhibit_v our_o lord_n himself_o unto_o believe_v mind_n and_o put_v they_o into_o a_o sure_a possession_n of_o he_o the_o truth_n common_o lie_v between_o two_o extreme_n and_o be_v a_o peaceable_a thing_n can_v join_v itself_o with_o either_o of_o the_o direct_o opposite_a party_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v seek_v for_o she_o in_o a_o middle_a path_n not_o bid_v such_o a_o defiance_n to_o the_o corporeal_a presence_n as_o to_o deny_v the_o real_a nor_o so_o subvert_v the_o fancy_n of_o a_o miraculous_a change_v into_o a_o celestial_a substance_n as_o to_o level_v these_o thing_n into_o mere_a shadow_n chap._n i._n first_o then_o this_o holy_a rite_n of_o eat_a bread_n break_v and_o drink_v wine_n pour_v out_o be_v a_o solemn_a commemoration_n of_o christ_n according_a as_o he_o himself_o say_v to_o all_o his_o apostle_n luk._n 22.19_o and_o particular_o to_o st._n paul_n who_o twice_o make_v mention_n of_o this_o command_n 25._o 1_o cor._n 11.24_o 25._o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n or_o for_o a_o remembrance_n of_o i_o his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v hereby_o call_v he_o to_o mind_n for_o we_o be_v never_o to_o forget_v he_o but_o rather_o that_o we_o shall_v keep_v he_o in_o mind_n and_o endeavour_v to_o perpetuate_v his_o name_n in_o the_o world_n and_o propagate_v the_o memory_n of_o he_o and_o his_o benefit_n to_o the_o late_a posterity_n now_o this_o be_v do_v by_o make_v a_o solemn_a rehearsal_n of_o his_o famous_a act_n and_o declare_v the_o inestimable_a mable_n greatness_n of_o his_o royal_a love_n for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o signify_v bare_o recordatio_fw-la record_v or_o register_n of_o his_o favour_n in_o our_o mind_n but_o commemoratio_fw-la a_o solemn_a declaration_n that_o we_o do_v well_o bear_v they_o in_o our_o heart_n and_o will_v continue_v the_o memory_n and_o spread_v the_o fame_n of_o he_o as_o far_o and_o as_o long_o as_o ever_o we_o be_v able_a i_o hope_v that_o none_o will_v conceive_v so_o little_a to_o be_v mean_v by_o this_o word_n remember_v or_o commemorate_v as_o a_o naked_a mention_n of_o his_o name_n with_o our_o mouth_n or_o a_o dead_a image_n of_o he_o in_o our_o mind_n for_o all_o these_o word_n to_o know_v believe_v meditate_v remember_v and_o the_o like_a be_v hearty_a word_n and_o full_a of_o life_n though_o they_o seem_v to_o speak_v only_a action_n of_o the_o mind_n yet_o in_o holy_a language_n they_o include_v in_o their_o comprehension_n the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n cold_a pale_a thought_n which_o have_v no_o feel_n of_o themselves_o nor_o leave_v any_o footstep_n or_o memorial_n behind_o they_o be_v as_o good_a as_o none_o at_o all_o and_o therefore_o i_o understand_v hereby_o a_o very_a warm_a sense_n in_o the_o soul_n which_o beget_v and_o stir_v up_o such_o motion_n in_o the_o heart_n as_o the_o conceive_a object_n be_v apt_a for_o to_o raise_v suppose_v you_o have_v be_v in_o deep_a love_n with_o any_o person_n and_o have_v lose_v the_o half_a of_o yourselves_o when_o you_o remember_v the_o death_n of_o that_o friend_n the_o image_n of_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o rob_v you_o of_o your_o life_n and_o make_v all_o the_o blood_n retire_v to_o your_o heart_n as_o if_o death_n be_v about_o to_o surprise_v the_o main_a fort_n of_o life_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o you_o think_v of_o that_o person_n as_o alive_a the_o remembrance_n of_o he_o make_v your_o spirit_n for_o to_o dance_v and_o the_o blood_n to_o run_v into_o your_o cheek_n and_o smile_n to_o sit_v on_o your_o forehead_n and_o breed_v a_o pleasance_n in_o your_o whole_a man_n just_o so_o will_v our_o saviour_n be_v remember_v by_o you_o that_o the_o thought_n of_o he_o may_v even_o kill_v you_o with_o grief_n and_o transport_v you_o with_o love_n and_o captivate_v your_o will_n and_o engage_v all_o your_o affection_n that_o they_o may_v be_v at_o his_o command_n and_o issue_v forth_o at_o his_o pleasure_n as_o you_o think_v of_o a_o friend_n of_o a_o father_n of_o a_o wife_n or_o a_o husband_n or_o any_o one_o that_o have_v get_v the_o possession_n of_o your_o heart_n so_o think_v of_o he_o by_o which_o example_n you_o may_v see_v that_o i_o intend_v not_o a_o natural_a passion_n and_o a_o sensual_a commotion_n in_o the_o soul_n but_o a_o wellgrounded_n affection_n when_o we_o read_v a_o true_a history_n or_o a_o romance_n we_o be_v apt_a to_o side_n with_o some_o person_n in_o the_o story_n and_o when_o we_o meet_v with_o a_o duel_n we_o favour_v one_o of_o the_o combatant_n and_o be_v sensible_a of_o his_o wound_n and_o sorry_a for_o his_o fall_n as_o on_o the_o contrary_n we_o be_v glad_a he_o come_v off_o a_o conqueror_n and_o win_v the_o field_n so_o may_v a_o man_n when_o he_o think_v of_o christ_n and_o his_o tragedy_n conceive_v a_o natural_a hatred_n and_o indignation_n at_o the_o treachery_n of_o judas_n and_o the_o vile_a malice_n of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o be_v much_o move_v to_o see_v he_o use_v in_o such_o a_o unworthy_a manner_n it_o may_v be_v fetch_v sigh_n from_o his_o heart_n and_o tear_n from_o his_o eye_n and_o put_v he_o into_o such_o a_o huge_a passion_n as_o if_o he_o suffer_v with_o he_o but_o if_o all_o this_o have_v non_fw-la effect_n in_o his_o life_n and_o produce_v no_o answerable_a fruit_n afterward_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o natural_a motion_n and_o be_v void_a of_o the_o divine_a and_o
heavenly_a spirit_n we_o must_v remember_v christ_n therefore_o as_o nehemiah_n desire_v god_n to_o remember_v he_o by_o do_v good_a or_o as_o we_o remember_v our_o creator_n by_o a_o true_a subjection_n of_o all_o our_o faculty_n to_o his_o sovereign_a will_n then_o we_o remember_v he_o as_o we_o ought_v when_o we_o get_v he_o form_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o have_v a_o more_o live_a image_n of_o he_o leave_v in_o our_o mind_n when_o it_o stir_v and_o be_v busy_a in_o our_o soul_n and_o awaken_v all_o other_o image_n and_o call_v up_o all_o divine_a truth_n that_o be_v within_o we_o to_o send_v they_o forth_o upon_o their_o several_a employment_n into_o our_o life_n now_o for_o the_o full_a understanding_n of_o this_o matter_n you_o must_v know_v that_o the_o paschal_n supper_n which_o be_v call_v by_o greg._n naz._n very_o elegant_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o more_o obscure_a type_n of_o this_o type_n be_v institute_v for_o a_o remembrance_n and_o be_v a_o feast_n of_o commemoration_n as_o will_v soon_o appear_v if_o you_o look_v but_o a_o while_n into_o the_o particular_n of_o it_o and_o first_o you_o must_v observe_v that_o the_o very_a day_n of_o the_o passeover_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o a_o memorial_n of_o their_o miraculous_a deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n as_o you_o may_v read_v exod._a 12.14_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v bid_v exod._n 13.3_o to_o remember_v this_o day_n in_o which_o they_o come_v out_o of_o egypt_n out_o of_o the_o house_n of_o bondage_n etc._n etc._n thence_o it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v command_v to_o eat_v the_o lamb_n with_o bitter_a herb_n exod._n 12.8_o for_o a_o remembrance_n of_o their_o hard_a bondage_n in_o egypt_n which_o make_v their_o life_n bitter_a unto_o they_o exod._n 1.14_o so_o be_v the_o unleavened_a bread_n the_o bread_n of_o affliction_n in_o remembrance_n that_o they_o bring_v their_o bread_n out_o of_o egypt_n unleavened_a exod._n 12.34_o and_o be_v there_o in_o great_a servitude_n exod._n 13.3_o so_o that_o their_o soul_n be_v even_o dry_v and_o parch_v in_o they_o the_o late_a jew_n have_v add_v the_o charóse_v which_o be_v a_o thick_a sauce_n in_o memory_n of_o the_o clay_n and_o mortar_n which_o they_o wrought_v in_o and_o they_o use_v red_a wine_n for_o a_o remembrance_n that_o pharaoh_n shed_v the_o blood_n of_o their_o child_n to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v that_o god_n require_v there_o shall_v be_v a_o rehearsal_n to_o their_o child_n of_o what_o the_o lord_n have_v do_v for_o they_o that_o so_o this_o feast_n may_v be_v for_o a_o sign_n upon_o their_o hand_n and_o for_o a_o memorial_n between_o their_o eye_n to_o all_o posterity_n as_o you_o may_v see_v exod._n 13.8_o 9_o and_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o jew_n call_v that_o section_n of_o the_o law_n or_o the_o lesson_n which_o they_o read_v that_o night_n the_o haggádah_n annunciation_n or_o show_v forth_o because_o they_o commemorate_a and_o predicate_v both_o their_o hard_a service_n and_o god_n wonderful_a salvation_n and_o the_o praise_n that_o be_v due_a to_o he_o for_o so_o great_a a_o mercy_n it_o be_v easy_a now_o to_o apply_v all_o this_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n if_o we_o do_v but_o consider_v that_o this_o likewise_o be_v a_o holy_a feast_n whence_o it_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n supper_n not_o only_o because_o he_o appoint_v it_o 11.20_o 1_o cor._n 11.20_o but_o because_o he_o be_v the_o end_n of_o its_o celebration_n and_o a_o entertainment_n at_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n 10.21_o 1_o cor._n 10.21_o this_o feast_n our_o saviour_n first_o keep_v with_o his_o apostle_n who_o be_v jew_n he_o make_v part_n of_o the_o passeover-chear_n to_o be_v the_o provision_n of_o it_o for_o he_o take_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o use_v to_o go_v about_o in_o that_o supper_n through_o the_o whole_a family_n to_o signify_v his_o break_a body_n and_o his_o blood_n which_o be_v to_o be_v shed_v now_o this_o be_v to_o be_v in_o commemoration_n of_o a_o deliverance_n wrought_v by_o he_o from_o a_o great_a tyranny_n than_o the_o israelite_n be_v under_o which_o make_v all_o the_o world_n to_o groan_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o thrust_v we_o all_o below_o into_o the_o devil_n fiery_a furnace_n and_o therefore_o as_o it_o be_v say_v exod._n 13.8_o thou_o shall_v show_v thy_o son_n in_o that_o day_n say_v this_o be_v do_v etc._n etc._n so_o the_o apostle_n in_o a_o manifest_a allusion_n to_o that_o phrase_n say_v 11.26_o 1_o cer._n 11.26_o that_o when_o we_o eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n we_o do_v show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n until_o he_o come_v so_o that_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o in_o this_o feast_n in_o honour_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v to_o make_v a_o rehearsal_n of_o his_o famous_a act_n to_o proclaim_v his_o mighty_a deed_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o glorious_a honour_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o of_o his_o wondrous_a work_n and_o to_o endeavour_v that_o one_o generation_n may_v praise_v his_o work_n to_o another_o etc._n psl_n 146.3_o 4_o etc._n etc._n and_o declare_v his_o mighty_a act_n that_o they_o may_v speak_v of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o talk_v of_o his_o power_n and_o indeed_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o the_o memory_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v by_o nothing_o so_o sensible_o preserve_v and_o so_o deep_o engrave_v in_o man_n mind_n as_o by_o feast_n and_o festival_n joy_n for_o it_o have_v be_v the_o way_n of_o all_o the_o world_n to_o send_v to_o posterity_n the_o memory_n of_o their_o benefactor_n or_o famous_a person_n by_o institute_v of_o such_o solemn_a time_n wherein_o man_n do_v assemble_v together_o and_o by_o the_o joy_n and_o pleasure_n of_o they_o more_o imprint_v the_o kindness_n and_o noble_a achievement_n of_o such_o worthy_n in_o their_o mind_n so_o we_o find_v among_o the_o greek_n their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o honour_n of_o aeacus_n their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o honour_n of_o ajax_n and_o in_o latter_a time_n their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o such_o like_a in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o such_o person_n and_o how_o high_o they_o deserve_v of_o the_o place_n where_o their_o feast_n be_v celebrate_v in_o like_a sort_n the_o jew_n have_v their_o feast_n in_o memory_n of_o some_o great_a and_o rare_a passage_n of_o divine_a providence_n though_o not_o of_o any_o particular_a person_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v tempt_v to_o worship_v they_o as_o their_o saviour_n according_a as_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o heathen_a be_v but_o all_o worship_n be_v due_a to_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n he_o think_v fit_a in_o like_a manner_n to_o appoint_v this_o feast_n to_o be_v as_o a_o passeover_n unto_o we_o a_o holy_a solemnity_n that_o shall_v call_v we_o together_o and_o assemble_v we_o in_o one_o body_n that_o we_o may_v be_v more_o sensible_o impress_v with_o he_o and_o that_o all_o generation_n may_v call_v he_o bless_v and_o he_o may_v never_o be_v forget_v to_o the_o world_n end_n now_o of_o two_o thing_n it_o be_v a_o remembrance_n and_o two_o way_n we_o do_v commemorate_v or_o remember_v they_o i._o it_o be_v institute_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tryph._n justin_n martyr_n dialog_n cum_fw-la tryph._n etc._n etc._n for_o a_o remembrance_n that_o he_o be_v embody_a for_o those_o that_o believe_v on_o he_o and_o become_v passable_a for_o their_o sake_n the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v in_o token_n that_o he_o have_v a_o true_a body_n and_o that_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n for_o thence_o tertullian_n and_o irenaeus_n do_v confute_v martion_n who_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o make_v his_o body_n to_o be_v a_o fantastical_a thing_n because_o then_o real_a bread_n and_o wine_n can_v not_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o it_o and_o so_o theodoret_n say_v out_o of_o ignatius_n 3._o dialog_n 3._o that_o some_o simon_n and_o menander_n i_o think_v do_v not_o admit_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thanksgiving_n and_o offering_n viz._n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o this_o sacrament_n because_o they_o do_v not_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n now_o with_o what_o affection_n we_o shall_v call_v to_o mind_v this_o love_n that_o god_n will_v appear_v to_o we_o not_o by_o a_o angel_n in_o a_o bright_a cloud_n not_o in_o a_o body_n of_o pure_a air_n but_o by_o his_o son_n in_o our_o own_o flesh_n i_o leave_v your_o own_o heart_n to_o tell_v you_o methink_v we_o shall_v wish_v that_o all_o the_o world_n can_v hear_v we_o proclaim_v this_o love_n and_o that_o even_o the_o field_n and_o forest_n i._n e._n the_o most_o desolate_a and_o heathenish_a place_n may_v resound_v our_o joyful_a acclamation_n to_o he_o we_o shall_v wish_v to_o feel_v something_o of_o ecstasy_n and_o
to_o go_v out_o of_o ourselves_o when_o we_o think_v of_o he_o for_o ii_o ib._n just_a mart._n ib._n it_o be_v institute_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o commemoration_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o suffering_n for_o we_o as_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v commemorate_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o body_n so_o do_v bread_n break_v and_o wine_n pour_v out_o commemorate_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o suffering_n for_o we_o which_o those_o fantastical_a people_n in_o the_o first_o time_n do_v no_o less_o deny_v and_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v give_v to_o we_o several_o not_o both_o together_o do_v clear_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v real_o dead_a his_o vital_a blood_n be_v separate_v from_o his_o body_n and_o his_o vein_n and_o heart_n be_v empty_v of_o it_o this_o be_v that_o miracle_n of_o love_n which_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o shall_v show_v forth_o till_o he_o come_v this_o be_v that_o famous_a act_n which_o never_o ennoble_v the_o story_n of_o any_o person_n that_o the_o lord_n will_v purchase_v enemy_n by_o his_o own_o blood_n yea_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o cross_n reconcile_v they_o to_o himself_o the_o thought_n of_o this_o be_v able_a to_o wound_v a_o heart_n of_o marble_n with_o love_n and_o to_o turn_v a_o rock_n into_o a_o fountain_n of_o tear_n and_o to_o unloose_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o dumb_a that_o they_o may_v speak_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o name_n and_o show_v forth_o his_o praise_n and_o therefore_o because_o this_o be_v such_o a_o singular_a instance_n of_o love_n and_o because_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o so_o many_o secret_n which_o we_o shall_v have_v before_o our_o eye_n it_o be_v the_o chief_a thing_n that_o we_o be_v to_o make_v a_o remembrance_n of_o but_o as_o i_o say_v before_o there_o be_v two_o part_n of_o this_o commemoration_n and_o it_o can_v be_v contain_v within_o the_o bound_n of_o this_o world_n but_o we_o must_v make_v it_o reach_v as_o far_o as_o heaven_n for_o 1._o we_o do_v show_v it_o forth_o and_o declare_v it_o unto_o man_n which_o be_v sufficient_o clear_a by_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v we_o do_v publish_v and_o annunciate_v unto_o all_o that_o he_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o have_v die_v for_o we_o and_o purchase_v blessing_n thereby_o beyond_o the_o estimate_n and_o account_v of_o humane_a thought_n and_o further_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v import_v that_o we_o do_v extol_v predicate_v magnify_v and_o high_o lift_v up_o in_o our_o praise_n this_o great_a benefit_n so_o that_o all_o may_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o as_o far_o as_o be_v in_o our_o power_n to_o procure_v this_o commemoration_n the_o minister_n chief_o make_v unto_o the_o people_n and_o all_o the_o people_n together_o with_o he_o to_o all_o that_o be_v present_a so_o that_o all_o may_v wonder_v at_o his_o love_n when_o our_o saviour_n therefore_o say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o the_o meaning_n be_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n that_o i_o dwell_v in_o flesh_n in_o memory_n of_o what_o i_o suffer_v in_o memory_n of_o the_o infinite_a price_n of_o my_o blood_n which_o i_o shed_v for_o you_o in_o memory_n of_o the_o victory_n that_o i_o have_v obtain_v by_o it_o over_o the_o enemy_n and_o tyrant_n of_o your_o soul_n in_o memory_n of_o the_o immortal_a glory_n that_o i_o have_v purchase_v for_o you_o celebrate_v this_o feast_n in_o memory_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n and_o when_o i_o be_o dead_a let_v i_o always_o live_v in_o your_o heart_n tell_v they_o one_o to_o another_o in_o a_o solemn_a manner_n and_o declare_v they_o in_o the_o face_n of_o my_o church_n let_v all_o age_n know_v these_o thing_n as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n shall_v last_v that_o as_o the_o benefit_n be_v of_o infinite_a merit_n so_o may_v the_o acknowledgement_n be_v a_o eternal_a memorial_n be_v so_o careful_a in_o do_v this_o that_o when_o i_o come_v again_o i_o may_v find_v you_o so_o do_v 2._o we_o do_v show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n unto_o god_n and_o commemorate_v before_o he_o the_o great_a thing_n he_o have_v do_v for_o we_o we_o keep_v it_o as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o memory_n and_o plead_v before_o he_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o son_n which_o we_o show_v unto_o he_o humble_o require_v that_o grace_n and_o pardon_n with_o all_o other_o benefit_n of_o it_o may_v be_v bestow_v on_o we_o and_o as_o the_o minister_n do_v most_o powerful_o pray_v in_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n when_o he_o represent_v it_o unto_o god_n so_o do_v the_o people_n also_o when_o they_o show_v unto_o he_o what_o his_o son_n have_v suffer_v every_o man_n may_v say_v behold_v o_o lord_n the_o bleed_a wound_n of_o thy_o own_o son_n remember_v how_o his_o body_n be_v break_v for_o we_o think_v upon_o his_o precious_a blood_n which_o be_v shed_v in_o our_o behalf_n let_v we_o die_v if_o he_o have_v not_o make_v a_o full_a satisfaction_n we_o desire_v not_o to_o be_v pardon_v if_o he_o have_v not_o pay_v our_o debt_n but_o can_v thou_o behold_v he_o and_o not_o be_v well_o please_v with_o we_o can_v thou_o look_v on_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o we_o represent_v to_o thou_o and_o turn_v thy_o face_n from_o we_o have_v thou_o not_o set_v he_o forth_o to_o be_v a_o propitiation_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n o_o lord_n than_o suffer_v we_o sinful_a creature_n to_o plead_v with_o thou_o let_v we_o prevail_v in_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o grace_n and_o blessing_n that_o we_o need_v and_o hide_v not_o thyself_o from_o we_o unless_o thou_o can_v hide_v thyself_o from_o thy_o son_n too_o who_o we_o bring_v with_o we_o unto_o thou_o in_o this_o sort_n may_v we_o take_v the_o boldness_n to_o speak_v to_o god_n and_o together_o with_o a_o representation_n of_o christ_n we_o may_v represent_v our_o own_o want_n and_o we_o may_v be_v confident_a that_o when_o god_n see_v his_o son_n when_o we_o hold_v up_o he_o as_o it_o be_v between_o his_o anger_n and_o our_o soul_n he_o will_v take_v some_o pity_n and_o have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o just_o as_o a_o poor_a man_n plead_v with_o a_o king_n commemorate_v to_o he_o the_o worthy_a deed_n of_o some_o of_o his_o ancestor_n or_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o name_n of_o some_o high_a favourite_n for_o who_o sake_n he_o desire_v his_o petition_n may_v be_v grant_v so_o it_o be_v with_o we_o when_o we_o come_v before_o god_n to_o request_v mercy_n of_o he_o we_o can_v hope_v to_o prevail_v for_o nothing_o but_o through_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o we_o can_v never_o mention_v with_o so_o much_o advantage_n as_o when_o we_o solemn_o commemorate_v his_o suffering_n and_o deserve_n for_o than_o we_o pray_v and_o do_v something_o else_o also_o which_o god_n have_v command_v so_o that_o there_o be_v the_o unite_a force_n of_o many_o acceptable_a thing_n to_o make_v we_o prevalent_a and_o hence_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v that_o isid_n pelus_n call_v the_o sacramental_a bread_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 123._o l._n 1._o epist._n 123._o the_o shewbread_n as_o we_o render_v it_o which_o we_o set_v before_o god_n as_o that_o stand_v always_o before_o his_o face_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n that_o god_n look_v upon_o it_o may_v remember_v his_o people_n israel_n for_o good_a it_o will_v not_o be_v unprofitable_a to_o add_v that_o this_o be_v one_o reason_n why_o the_o ancient_n call_v this_o action_n a_o sacrifice_n which_o the_o romanist_n now_o so_o much_o urge_v because_o it_o do_v represent_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o christ_n once_o offer_v it_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o death_n which_o we_o commemorate_v unto_o which_o the_o apostle_n paul_n as_o a_o learned_a man_n conceive_v have_v a_o reference_n l'emptreur_fw-fr l'emptreur_fw-fr when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o galatian_n 3.1_o gal._n 3.1_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v set_v forth_o evident_o before_o their_o eye_n crucify_v among_o they_o they_o see_v as_o it_o be_v his_o sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n it_o be_v so_o lively_o figure_v in_o this_o sacrament_n and_o it_o be_v very_o plain_a that_o chrysostome_n understand_v no_o more_o &c_n hom._n 27._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &c_n &c_n when_o as_o he_o thus_o speak_v upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n what_o then_o do_v not_o we_o offer_v every_o day_n yet_o we_o offer_v by_o make_v a_o commemoration_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o his_o death_n and_o we_o do_v not_o make_v another_o sacrifice_n every_o day_n but_o always_o the_o same_o or_o rather_o a_o remembrance_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n such_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v only_a rememorative_n and_o in_o representation_n we_o all_o acknowledge_v and_o if_o that_o will_v content_v
to_o observe_v this_o vow_n far_o more_o religious_o than_o we_o do_v a_o oath_n to_o any_o mortal_a man_n which_o yet_o no_o person_n of_o credit_n and_o conscience_n will_v break_v for_o all_o the_o world_n chap._n iu._n to_o all_o those_o that_o be_v thus_o faithful_o in_o covenant_n with_o he_o this_o sacrament_n be_v a_o further_a sign_n and_o seal_v of_o remission_n of_o sin_n for_o the_o law_n of_o covenant_n do_v require_v that_o where_o one_o party_n do_v profess_v friendship_n and_o engage_v to_o fidelity_n the_o other_o person_n in_o the_o agreement_n shall_v make_v assurance_n of_o his_o love_n and_o confirm_v his_o promise_n and_o therefore_o when_o we_o come_v with_o heart_n full_a of_o love_n to_o renew_v our_o friendship_n with_o god_n we_o may_v believe_v that_o he_o do_v embrace_v we_o also_o with_o the_o dear_a affection_n and_o give_v we_o great_a testimony_n that_o he_o have_v cancel_v all_o the_o bond_n wherein_o we_o stand_v indebt_v to_o he_o bond_n able_a to_o break_v the_o whole_a world_n if_o payment_n be_v exact_v debt_n which_o all_o man_n and_o angel_n can_v possible_o discharge_v which_o yet_o he_o be_v so_o willing_a to_o acquit_v we_o of_o that_o he_o have_v appoint_v this_o holy_a action_n for_o that_o end_n that_o we_o may_v have_v more_o pledge_n of_o his_o love_n and_o more_o assurance_n that_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v over_o to_o eternal_a punishment_n well_o may_v we_o run_v into_o the_o arm_n of_o christ_n where_o we_o expect_v to_o receive_v such_o favour_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o we_o be_v forward_o to_o tie_v ourselves_o fast_o to_o god_n as_o i_o say_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n when_o he_o bind_v himself_o as_o fast_v to_o we_o we_o need_v not_o stand_v so_o much_o upon_o it_o to_o promise_v even_o to_o die_v for_o he_o when_o it_o be_v but_o the_o way_n to_o life_n we_o may_v be_v glad_a to_o lie_v in_o the_o wound_n of_o christ_n when_o we_o find_v a_o cure_n there_o for_o our_o sin_n a_o crucify_a saviour_n shall_v be_v most_o dear_a unto_o we_o and_o we_o shall_v most_o joyful_o kiss_v his_o cross_n see_v we_o hope_v thereby_o to_o have_v our_o iniquity_n cross_v out_o and_o stand_v no_o long_o upon_o our_o account_n methinks_v all_o that_o hear_v of_o such_o a_o covenant_n of_o grace_n shall_v be_v desirous_a to_o enter_v into_o it_o and_o so_o they_o will_v if_o they_o have_v not_o as_o trifle_a conceit_n of_o the_o evil_a of_o sin_n as_o they_o have_v of_o the_o worth_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o that_o covenant_n shall_v be_v glad_a of_o a_o opportunity_n to_o reiterate_v it_o that_o they_o may_v have_v strong_a ground_n whereon_o to_o hope_v for_o pardon_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o the_o singular_a mercy_n of_o god_n that_o we_o can_v never_o come_v to_o profess_v any_o love_n to_o he_o but_o he_o will_v return_v back_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o to_o we_o and_o that_o when_o we_o give_v thanks_o to_o he_o he_o will_v give_v we_o more_o cause_n to_o thank_v he_o now_o for_o the_o full_a clear_n of_o this_o thing_n i_o shall_v propound_v but_o these_o three_o consideration_n i._o that_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n do_v tell_v we_o what_o be_v a_o great_a end_n of_o it_o when_o he_o say_v 22.20_o m●th_n 26.28_o luk_n 22.20_o this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n or_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o which_o speech_n you_o must_v note_v that_o the_o word_n this_o do_v stand_v for_o the_o action_n of_o give_v and_o receive_v not_o for_o that_o which_o be_v give_v and_o receive_v in_o and_o by_o it_o for_o the_o cup_n or_o the_o blood_n can_v be_v a_o testament_n or_o covenant_n but_o the_o give_v and_o receive_v of_o the_o cup_n or_o blood_n be_v and_o therefore_o by_o this_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n etc._n etc._n must_v be_v mean_v this_o action_n be_v a_o covenant_n between_o you_o and_o i_o make_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n for_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o your_o sin_n the_o do_v of_o this_o do_v necessary_o presuppose_v a_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n have_v make_v and_o which_o we_o own_o in_o christ_n blood_n but_o beside_o it_o do_v import_v a_o profession_n both_o on_o god_n part_n and_o on_o we_o who_o do_v receive_v of_o perform_v and_o make_v good_a that_o which_o we_o be_v respective_o bind_v unto_o so_o that_o god_n do_v there_o tender_a all_o that_o which_o he_o promise_v in_o the_o gospel_n comwe_v by_o receive_v do_v bind_v ourselves_o as_o you_o have_v see_v to_o all_o the_o gospel_n and_o maunds_z now_o this_o be_v the_o great_a thing_n that_o god_n promise_v in_o his_o covenant_n i_o will_v be_v merciful_a to_o their_o unrighteousness_n and_o their_o sin_n and_o their_o iniquity_n will_v i_o remember_v no_o more_o this_o action_n therefore_o be_v appoint_v by_o he_o not_o only_o to_o be_v a_o symbol_n of_o his_o suffering_n which_o do_v ratify_v the_o covenant_n of_o forgiveness_n but_o to_o be_v a_o exhibition_n of_o himself_o for_o to_o put_v we_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o great_a thing_n purchase_v by_o his_o blood_n which_o be_v pardon_n to_o all_o penitent_a sinner_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n as_o chrysostom_n observe_v be_v shed_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 26._o in_o matth._n 26._o for_o the_o save_n of_o the_o first-born_a of_o israel_n but_o christ_n blood_n who_o be_v our_o passeover_n be_v shed_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o sin_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o whole_a world_n now_o though_o the_o shed_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o sprinkle_v of_o it_o on_o the_o door_n post_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o deliverance_n yet_o their_o eat_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v that_o which_o do_v entitle_v they_o to_o it_o and_o give_v they_o a_o right_n to_o that_o salvation_n so_o though_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n shed_v upon_o the_o tree_n be_v that_o which_o procure_v the_o pardon_n and_o be_v the_o price_n of_o our_o redemption_n yet_o that_o remission_n be_v solemn_o exhibit_v and_o give_v unto_o we_o or_o as_o we_o speak_v apply_v to_o our_o person_n by_o the_o eat_n of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n which_o be_v as_o effectual_a as_o deed_n or_o instrument_n for_o the_o convey_n of_o this_o mercy_n unto_o we_o we_o may_v see_v this_o well_o explain_v to_o our_o hand_n by_o a_o ancient_a author_n the_o sacrament_n say_v bernard_n be_v a_o sacred_a sign_n or_o secret_a coena_fw-la serm._n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la as_o may_v be_v illustrate_v by_o a_o common_a example_n if_o i_o give_v a_o ring_n to_o a_o friend_n it_o have_v no_o other_o significancy_n but_o that_o i_o love_v he_o but_o if_o i_o give_v he_o a_o ring_n ad_fw-la investiendum_fw-la de_fw-la haereditate_fw-la aliqua_fw-la thereby_o to_o invest_v he_o in_o the_o right_n of_o some_o inheritance_n than_o it_o be_v both_o a_o ring_n and_o a_o sign_n also_o in_o like_a manner_n though_o bread_n and_o wine_n set_v before_o we_o do_v denote_v nothing_o more_o than_o the_o kindness_n of_o a_o friend_n that_o will_v refresh_v we_o yet_o give_v and_o take_v as_o a_o religious_a rite_n and_o in_o token_n of_o a_o covenant_n they_o be_v turn_v into_o another_o thing_n and_o be_v both_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o likewise_o the_o instrument_n of_o a_o conveyance_n and_o this_o be_v the_o change_n which_o the_o ancient_n mention_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n a_o change_n not_o in_o the_o substance_n but_o in_o the_o accident_n not_o in_o their_o nature_n but_o in_o their_o use_n not_o in_o any_o natural_a quality_n but_o in_o their_o significancy_n application_n and_o divine_a efficacy_n as_o when_o the_o wax_n be_v imprint_v and_o make_v a_o seal_n or_o silver_n stamp_v and_o make_v a_o coin_n they_o remain_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n and_o yet_o be_v change_v in_o regard_n of_o their_o use_n and_o value_v also_o so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n when_o they_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n and_o deliver_v by_o he_o again_o to_o we_o and_o receive_v as_o a_o representation_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n they_o continue_v what_o they_o be_v if_o we_o look_v only_o at_o their_o matter_n but_o be_v change_v by_o god_n appointment_n into_o divine_a thing_n if_o we_o respect_v the_o end_n to_o which_o they_o be_v apply_v which_o be_v to_o make_v over_o to_o we_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o covenant_n viz._n remission_n of_o sin_n this_o be_v all_o that_o theodoret_n mean_v by_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o transmutation_n and_o cyril_n by_o his_o 〈◊〉_d
conclusion_n will_v be_v as_o certain_a as_o either_o that_o therefore_o i_o be_o pardon_v but_o see_v the_o first_o proposition_n be_v ground_v on_o a_o fallible_a judgement_n and_o it_o be_v possible_a i_o may_v deceive_v myself_o therefore_o i_o can_v make_v a_o conclusion_n of_o equal_a certainty_n with_o the_o second_o proposition_n but_o that_o i_o be_o pardon_v will_v be_v no_o strong_a than_o this_o that_o i_o believe_v yet_o notwithstanding_o if_o a_o man_n find_v no_o cause_n to_o suspect_v his_o own_o reality_n he_o may_v have_v a_o belief_n of_o his_o pardon_n free_a from_o doubt_v and_o may_v rest_v well_o satisfy_v that_o he_o be_v in_o a_o good_a estate_n because_o nothing_o appear_v to_o the_o contrary_a but_o that_o he_o sincere_o do_v the_o will_n of_o christ_n though_o he_o attain_v unto_o this_o persuasion_n not_o by_o a_o direct_a but_o a_o reflex_n act_n of_o faith_n i._n e._n not_o mere_o by_o a_o belief_n of_o god_n word_n which_o no_o where_n say_v that_o i_o be_o pardon_v but_o by_o a_o serious_a examination_n of_o himself_o according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o word_n yet_o see_v he_o discern_v a_o conformity_n between_o himself_o and_o it_o he_o may_v have_v a_o very_a good_a and_o strong_a though_o not_o infallible_a assurance_n that_o his_o sin_n be_v blot_v out_o and_o shall_v not_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o whensoever_o then_o we_o approach_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n we_o shall_v come_v with_o a_o belief_n that_o god_n make_v over_o unto_o we_o the_o great_a blessing_n if_o we_o receive_v they_o as_o he_o require_v now_o all_o that_o he_o require_v be_v that_o we_o will_v love_v and_o obey_v he_o as_o we_o say_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n when_o we_o hearty_o engage_v to_o this_o we_o have_v hereby_o a_o conveyance_n make_v to_o we_o of_o all_o that_o heaven_n contain_v which_o be_v include_v in_o this_o phrase_n forgiveness_n of_o sin_n for_o you_o may_v observe_v that_o in_o scripture-stile_n the_o take_v away_o of_o god_n wrath_n be_v the_o do_v of_o some_o favour_n his_o kindness_n be_v not_o mere_a negative_n or_o removal_n of_o evil_a but_o when_o he_o forgive_v sin_n and_o inflict_v not_o the_o punishment_n he_o confer_v the_o contrary_a blessing_n and_o restore_v we_o to_o the_o inheritance_n chap._n v._n the_o distance_n be_v take_v away_o between_o god_n and_o we_o this_o sacrament_n must_v be_v consider_v as_o a_o mean_n of_o our_o near_a union_n with_o our_o lord_n christ_n he_o do_v not_o only_o embrace_v we_o when_o we_o come_v to_o his_o table_n but_o he_o likewise_o knit_v and_o join_v we_o to_o himself_o he_o not_o only_o tie_v we_o with_o cord_n of_o love_n and_o bind_v we_o to_o his_o service_n by_o favour_n and_o blessing_n confer_v on_o we_o but_o in_o some_o sort_n he_o make_v we_o one_o with_o he_o and_o take_v we_o into_o a_o near_a conjunction_n then_o before_o we_o enjoy_v and_o who_o will_v not_o desire_v to_o be_v enfold_v in_o his_o arm_n who_o will_v not_o repose_v himself_o in_o his_o bosom_n but_o who_o dare_v have_v presume_v to_o entertain_v a_o thought_n of_o be_v marry_v unto_o he_o and_o become_v one_o with_o he_o and_o yet_o who_o will_v refuse_v such_o a_o favour_n now_o that_o it_o be_v offer_v to_o we_o but_o they_o that_o neither_o know_v he_o nor_o themselves_o this_o covenant_n into_o which_o we_o enter_v be_v a_o marriage-covenant_n and_o our_o lord_n promise_v to_o be_v as_o a_o husband_n to_o we_o and_o we_o choose_v he_o as_o the_o best_a belove_a of_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o common_a friendship_n which_o we_o contract_v with_o he_o by_o eat_v and_o drink_v at_o his_o table_n but_o the_o rare_a and_o high_a that_o can_v be_v imagine_v and_o we_o be_v to_o look_v upon_o this_o as_o a_o marriage-feast_n what_o this_o union_n then_o with_o christ_n be_v it_o need_v not_o be_v dispute_v we_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o it_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v between_o a_o man_n and_o his_o wise_a the_o vine_n and_o the_o branch_n the_o head_n and_o the_o member_n the_o building_n and_o the_o foundation_n as_o hereafter_o will_n more_o full_o appear_v yea_o far_o beyond_o all_o sort_n of_o union_n whether_o moral_a natural_a or_o artificial_a which_o the_o world_n afford_v example_n of_o that_o which_o i_o be_o to_o show_v be_v that_o by_o these_o sacramental_a pledge_n of_o his_o love_n and_o this_o communion_n with_o christ_n our_o lord_n we_o be_v fast_o tie_v unto_o he_o and_o the_o ligament_n be_v make_v more_o strong_a and_o indissoluble_a between_o we_o this_o will_v be_v manifest_a upon_o these_o consideration_n i._o see_v we_o do_v after_o a_o sort_n eat_v christ_n flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n we_o must_v needs_o thereby_o be_v incorporate_v further_o with_o he_o i_o dispute_v not_o now_o in_o what_o sense_n we_o eat_v and_o drink_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o so_o far_o as_o we_o grant_v that_o we_o do_v that_o so_o far_o the_o other_o be_v likewise_o do_v our_o union_n be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_a and_o degree_n with_o our_o communion_n and_o participation_n and_o therefore_o when_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o a_o communion_n with_o they_o 1_o cor._n 10.16_o that_o adhaesion_n and_o cleave_v to_o christ_n signify_v that_o in_o some_o sort_n we_o be_v make_v one_o with_o he_o so_o chrysostome_n observe_v that_o the_o apostle_n use_v not_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v participation_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d communion_n because_o he_o will_v show_v the_o near_a conjunction_n that_o be_v between_o we_o and_o that_o we_o be_v knit_v and_o unite_v to_o he_o by_o this_o partake_n of_o he_o so_o likewise_o oecumenius_n upon_o the_o place_n observe_v that_o christ_n blood_n unit_v we_o to_o he_o as_o our_o head_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o our_o receive_n of_o it_o and_o indeed_o as_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o analogy_n of_o speech_n to_o call_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n if_o they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n it_o be_v incongruous_a to_o use_v the_o phrase_n of_o eat_v and_o drink_v if_o there_o be_v no_o union_n between_o we_o and_o that_o which_o we_o eat_v and_o drink_v ii_o faith_n and_o love_n bear_v a_o great_a part_n in_o this_o holy_a action_n and_o christ_n be_v by_o they_o embrace_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o mean_n of_o our_o near_a union_n for_o union_n you_o know_v begin_v in_o our_o consent_n unto_o he_o and_o therefore_o the_o strong_a that_o grow_v and_o with_o the_o great_a dearness_n of_o affection_n that_o be_v express_v the_o strong_a and_o close_o our_o union_n to_o he_o become_v now_o faith_n and_o love_n which_o be_v our_o consent_n receive_v here_o a_o great_a increase_n of_o strength_n by_o the_o most_o intense_a operation_n of_o they_o which_o be_v apt_a to_o perfect_a and_o complete_a they_o no_o man_n come_v aright_o hither_o that_o do_v not_o from_o the_o bottom_n of_o his_o heart_n as_o you_o have_v see_v put_v himself_o into_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v move_v and_o govern_v at_o his_o pleasure_n he_o must_v run_v into_o christ_n heart_n to_o have_v no_o motion_n but_o according_a as_o that_o beat_v so_o that_o his_o whole_a life_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o a_o pulse_n answer_v to_o the_o heart_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o cyril_n bring_v in_o christ_n call_v upon_o man_n and_o say_v i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d caen._n hom._n in_o mist_n caen._n take_v i_o in_o as_o a_o leaven_n to_o diffuse_v itself_o through_o your_o whole_a mass_n be_v you_o even_o leaven_a with_o i_o that_o every_o bit_n of_o you_o may_v taste_v of_o i_o this_o can_v be_v effect_v by_o nothing_o else_o but_o a_o hearty_a conjunction_n of_o our_o will_n with_o christ_n we_o must_v put_v ourselves_o whole_o out_o of_o our_o own_o power_n as_o the_o wife_n do_v when_o she_o give_v herself_o to_o her_o husband_n and_o the_o more_o we_o can_v get_v out_o of_o ourselves_o so_o as_o to_o have_v no_o proper_a will_n of_o our_o own_o the_o more_o we_o become_v one_o with_o he_o when_o we_o feel_v not_o ourselves_o to_o be_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o nor_o to_o have_v any_o interest_n different_a from_o that_o of_o he_o than_o we_o and_o he_o be_v make_v perfect_o one_o or_o rather_o we_o be_v not_o but_o he_o be_v all._n now_o this_o abolition_n of_o propriety_n and_o self_n be_v much_o promote_v by_o the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o his_o unvaluable_a love_n whereby_o we_o become_v dead_a and_o be_v even_o snatch_v and_o ravish_v from_o ourselves_o whatsoever_o other_o union_n there_o may_v be_v they_o all_o wait_v
ch_n ysost_n &_o theoph●l_v or_o if_o we_o understand_v the_o apostle_n word_n of_o the_o spirit_n receive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d after_o baptism_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d before_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n whereby_o he_o further_a water_n so_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v use_v 1_o cor._n 3.6_o 7_o 8._o that_o which_o he_o have_v plant_v yet_o still_o it_o will_v be_v true_a that_o at_o this_o time_n good_a christian_n do_v receive_v large_a irrigation_n from_o that_o fountain_n of_o life_n that_o they_o may_v shoot_v up_o to_o a_o great_a height_n and_o bring_v forth_o more_o fruit_n for_o this_o spirit_n be_v always_o needful_a be_v that_o which_o maintain_v our_o life_n and_o it_o be_v give_v in_o the_o use_n of_o those_o mean_n that_o god_n have_v instirute_v for_o increase_v in_o grace_n of_o which_o mean_v this_o holy_a feast_n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a that_o life-giving_a spirit_n must_v be_v conceive_v to_o lay_v fast_o hold_v of_o we_o and_o knit_v we_o more_o unto_o our_o head_n it_o be_v the_o vis_fw-la vicaria_fw-la of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o power_n which_o supply_v his_o place_n here_o in_o the_o world_n by_o which_o he_o be_v present_a to_o our_o soul_n now_o when_o shall_v we_o conceive_v it_o more_o present_a then_o when_o we_o remember_v he_o who_o spirit_n it_o be_v and_o when_o he_o do_v exhibit_v himself_o unto_o we_o under_o these_o shadow_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n these_o be_v token_n of_o his_o presence_n and_o represent_v he_o to_o we_o the_o spirit_n be_v that_o whereby_o he_o be_v present_a and_o therefore_o here_o it_o must_v be_v again_o confer_v on_o we_o here_o it_o do_v take_v a_o strong_a seizure_n of_o we_o here_o it_o possess_v itself_o more_o full_o of_o all_o our_o faculty_n here_o it_o give_v we_o more_o sensible_a touch_n from_o our_o head_n and_o make_v we_o feel_v more_o vital_a influence_n descend_v thence_o unto_o we_o and_o so_o it_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o union_n must_v needs_o strengthen_v and_o confirm_v we_o in_o a_o inseparable_a conjunction_n with_o he_o christ_n do_v not_o descend_v local_o unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v feed_v on_o he_o but_o as_o the_o sun_n touch_v we_o by_o his_o beam_n without_o remove_v out_o of_o its_o sphere_n so_o christ_n come_v down_o upon_o we_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n move_v by_o its_o heavenly_a virtue_n in_o our_o heart_n though_o he_o remain_v above_o and_o this_o virtue_n come_v from_o our_o head_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n it_o do_v both_o quicken_v we_o to_o his_o service_n and_o tie_v we_o to_o he_o and_o likewise_o we_o be_v say_v to_o partake_v of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n because_o we_o sensible_o feel_v the_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n of_o they_o in_o ourselves_o and_o do_v not_o wonder_v that_o i_o say_v we_o be_v more_o strong_o unite_v to_o christ_n hereby_o for_o unson_n be_v not_o to_o be_v conceve_v without_o all_o latitude_n but_o to_o be_v look_v on_o as_o capable_a of_o increase_n or_o diminution_n and_o as_o that_o which_o may_v grow_v loose_a and_o slack_a or_o be_v make_v more_o perfect_a and_o compact_a as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o foul_a and_o body_n so_o it_o be_v between_o christ_n and_o his_o member_n though_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o quite_o unloose_v from_o the_o body_n yet_o by_o sickness_n the_o bond_n may_v become_v rot_v or_o by_o fast_v they_o may_v grow_v weak_a and_o feeble_a so_o that_o it_o may_v have_v but_o a_o slender_a hold_n of_o its_o companion_n and_o a_o little_a violence_n may_v snap_v they_o asunder_o even_o so_o though_o our_o soul_n be_v tie_v to_o christ_n yet_o by_o our_o daily_a infirmity_n or_o the_o frequent_a incursion_n of_o our_o enemy_n or_o by_o long_o abstain_v from_o this_o holy_a food_n and_o other_o negligence_n we_o shall_v find_v a_o kind_n of_o looseness_n in_o our_o soul_n and_o that_o we_o be_v go_v off_o from_o christ_n and_o tend_v to_o a_o dissolution_n unless_o we_o gird_v up_o the_o loin_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o be_v vigilant_a and_o sober_a watch_v unto_o all_o holy_a duty_n and_o therefore_o as_o in_o the_o former_a case_n we_o must_v betake_v ourselves_o to_o our_o physic_n and_o food_n and_o good_a exercise_n for_o the_o make_v the_o bond_n sound_a and_o strong_a so_o in_o this_o we_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o holy_a feast_n we_o be_v speak_v of_o which_o be_v both_o meat_n and_o medicine_n and_o we_o must_v stir_v up_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o we_o and_o beg_v more_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o may_v strengthen_v the_o thing_n that_o remain_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v to_o receive_v the_o spirit_n not_o by_o measure_n be_v the_o privilege_n of_o none_o but_o our_o head_n we_o that_o receive_v from_o his_o fullness_n have_v not_o our_o portion_n all_o at_o once_o 1.19_o phil._n 1.19_o but_o must_v daily_o look_v for_o a_o supply_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o so_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1.17_o rom._n 1.17_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n be_v reveal_v from_o faith_n to_o faith_n and_o we_o must_v grow_v up_o into_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o head_n even_o christ_n which_o show_v that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v one_o with_o he_o in_o a_o more_o excellent_a manner_n then_o when_o we_o be_v first_o bear_v because_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n grow_v unto_o a_o great_a strength_n within_o we_o as_o we_o receive_v more_o of_o heavenly_a nutriment_n into_o our_o soul_n and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o sacrament_n which_o the_o church_n speak_v of_o and_o believe_v as_o it_o be_v one_o reason_n likewise_o of_o the_o change_n which_o be_v so_o much_o noise_v because_o by_o his_o power_n these_o thing_n become_v effectual_a to_o so_o great_a purpose_n when_o they_o be_v holy_o receive_v our_o lord_n do_v call_v these_o sign_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n they_o signify_v because_o in_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v present_a to_o we_o viz._n by_o the_o communication_n of_o that_o to_o we_o which_o they_o do_v purchase_v for_o we_o from_o the_o sacred_a humanity_n of_o christ_n life_n and_o spirit_n be_v derive_v unto_o we_o as_o motion_n be_v from_o the_o head_n unto_o the_o member_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o godhead_n do_v diffuse_v the_o virtue_n or_o operation_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n to_o the_o enliven_a the_o heart_n of_o man_n that_o right_o receive_v the_o sacramental_a pledge_n manna_n be_v call_v spiritual_a bread_n and_o water_n that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o rock_n be_v name_v spiritual_a dirnk_n 4._o 1_o cor._n 10.3_o 4._o and_o the_o rock_n be_v say_v to_o be_v christ_n because_o they_o do_v signify_v he_o and_o be_v token_n of_o his_o presence_n and_o therefore_o much_o more_o may_v this_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v call_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o speak_v of_o as_o if_o they_o be_v himself_o because_o they_o do_v more_o lively_o represent_v he_o and_o he_o have_v annex_v his_o presence_n more_o powerful_o to_o they_o or_o as_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_n say_v they_o be_v call_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n not_o because_o they_o be_v proper_o so_o sed_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o se_fw-la mysterium_fw-la corporis_fw-la ejus_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la contineant_fw-la but_o because_o they_o contain_v in_o they_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o this_o as_o i_o say_v be_v all_o the_o change_n that_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v in_o they_o according_a as_o theodoret_n do_v excellent_o express_v it_o 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dialog_n 1._o christ_n say_v he_o call_v they_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n they_o represent_v not_o change_v the_o nature_n but_o add_v grace_n unto_o the_o nature_n and_o what_o that_o grace_n be_v i_o have_v already_o tell_v you_o in_o this_o chapter_n so_o that_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o in_o those_o that_o receive_v they_o according_a as_o learned_a hooker_n speak_v for_o christ_n say_v first_o take_v and_o eat_v and_o then_o after_o that_o this_o be_v my_o body_n before_o we_o take_v and_o eat_v it_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n unto_o we_o but_o when_o we_o take_v and_o eat_v as_o we_o ought_v than_o he_o give_v we_o his_o whole_a self_n and_o put_v we_o into_o possession_n of_o all_o such_o fave_a grace_n as_o his_o facrificed_a body_n can_v yield_v and_o our_o foul_n do_v then_o need_v the_o change_n be_v in_o our_o soul_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o be_v though_o not_o transubstantiate_v into_o another_o body_n yet_o metamorphose_v and_o transform_v into_o
another_o likeness_n by_o the_o offering_n up_o of_o our_o body_n to_o god_n which_o be_v a_o piece_n of_o this_o service_n rom._n 12.1_o 2._o and_o so_o some_o observe_v that_o all_o other_o meat_n be_v receive_v as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o and_o no_o otherwise_o but_o this_o meat_n be_v divers_a as_o it_o be_v receive_v other_o meat_n affect_v and_o alter_v the_o taste_n but_o here_o the_o taste_n alter_v the_o meat_n for_o if_o it_o be_v worthy_o receive_v it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n if_o unworthy_o it_o be_v but_o bare_a bread_n and_o wine_n but_o yet_o this_o must_v be_v cautious_o understand_v when_o we_o thus_o speak_v for_o his_o presence_n be_v with_o the_o bread_n though_o not_o in_o it_o though_o it_o be_v only_o in_o we_o yet_o it_o come_v with_o it_o unto_o we_o if_o we_o will_v receive_v he_o because_o else_o we_o shall_v not_o know_v how_o unworthy_a person_n be_v say_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n 11.27_o 1_o cor._n 11.27_o if_o he_o be_v not_o present_a with_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o work_v in_o man_n soul_n this_o likewise_o be_v to_o be_v further_o observe_v for_o the_o better_a under_o stand_v of_o it_o that_o the_o devil_n who_o love_v to_o imitate_v god_n that_o he_o may_v the_o better_a cousin_n and_o cheat_v do_v seldom_o manifest_v his_o power_n to_o any_o great_a purpose_n but_o when_o he_o be_v call_v by_o some_o of_o his_o own_o ceremony_n and_o sacrament_n that_o he_o have_v appoint_v this_o do_v but_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n be_v then_o most_o powerful_o present_v when_o we_o use_v his_o rite_n which_o he_o have_v institute_v and_o hallow_v as_o special_a remembrance_n of_o his_o love_n and_o testimony_n of_o our_o love_n unto_o he_o so_o that_o we_o may_v come_v hither_o and_o expect_v that_o we_o shall_v feel_v more_o at_o such_o a_o time_n and_o in_o the_o use_n of_o such_o mean_n then_o at_o or_o in_o other_o because_o he_o have_v make_v they_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v other_o union_n than_o this_o by_o christ_n spirit_n i_o know_v no_o use_n of_o though_o we_o shall_v believe_v that_o which_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v i_o can_v conceive_v great_a thing_n concern_v the_o power_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n and_o it_o be_v not_o for_o we_o to_o tell_v how_o far_o it_o may_v extend_v its_o influence_n through_o the_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o deity_n that_o it_o be_v bright_a than_o the_o sun_n saint_n paul_n see_v when_o the_o lord_n appear_v to_o he_o act_v 26.13_o and_o as_o the_o sun_n we_o see_v communicate_v his_o beam_n a_o vast_a way_n and_o twist_v itself_o about_o we_o by_o silver_n thread_n of_o light_n though_o seat_v in_o the_o heaven_n so_o may_v we_o conceive_v that_o the_o sacred_a humanity_n of_o christ_n do_v tie_v we_o to_o itself_o by_o cord_n of_o love_n and_o now_o embrace_v we_o in_o its_o outstretch_a arm_n after_o a_o more_o affectionate_a manner_n when_o we_o come_v to_o remember_v he_o but_o to_o what_o purpose_v this_o shall_v serve_v i_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v and_o without_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o the_o flesh_n can_v profit_v nothing_o at_o all_o though_o never_o so_o glorious_a and_o therefore_o i_o lay_v aside_o such_o thought_n and_o content_v myself_o to_o know_v that_o they_o that_o be_v join_v or_o cleave_v to_o the_o lord_n 6.17_o 1_o cor._n 6.17_o be_v one_o spirit_n 5._o now_o from_o this_o secret_a union_n that_o be_v here_o make_v between_o christ_n and_o our_o person_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o this_o sacrament_n have_v be_v account_v a_o earnest_n and_o pledge_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o nothing_o that_o be_v make_v one_o with_o christ_n can_v die_v and_o be_v lose_v but_o he_o will_v raise_v it_o up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n his_o spirit_n can_v find_v out_o all_o their_o dust_n after_o a_o thousand_o change_n it_o can_v gather_v all_o their_o disperson_n and_o renuite_v their_o scatter_a crumb_n and_o knead_v they_o again_o into_o a_o goodly_a body_n and_o this_o it_o will_v do_v 6.19_o 1_o cor._n 6.19_o for_o their_o very_a body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o he_o will_v quicken_v their_o mortal_a body_n 8.11_o rom._n 8.11_o by_o his_o spirit_n that_o dwell_v in_o they_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o cyril_n so_o earnest_o invite_v guest_n to_o this_o feast_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n hom._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d l._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v come_v eat_v the_o bread_n that_o renew_v your_o nature_n drink_v the_o wine_n that_o be_v the_o smile_n and_o cheer_n of_o immortality_n eat_v the_o bread_n that_o purge_v away_o the_o ancient_a bitterness_n drink_v the_o wine_n that_o assuage_n the_o pain_n of_o our_o old_a sore_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o be_v the_o very_a restorative_n of_o nature_n a_o heal_a plaster_n for_o the_o bite_n of_o the_o serpent_n a_o powerful_a antidote_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ain_v all_o his_o poison_n he_o have_v infuse_v into_o we_o and_o so_o several_a of_o the_o elder_a time_n speak_v not_o without_o reason_n for_o see_v our_o lord_n give_v to_o these_o thing_n the_o name_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n we_o need_v not_o fear_v to_o attribute_v to_o they_o the_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n of_o his_o death_n which_o we_o know_v be_v the_o restorer_n of_o life_n we_o shall_v think_v therefore_o when_o we_o go_v to_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o we_o go_v to_o join_v ourselves_o more_o close_o to_o our_o head_n and_o to_o unite_v our_o heart_n more_o firm_o to_o the_o fountain_n of_o our_o life_n that_o we_o go_v to_o receive_v of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n which_o like_o wine_n run_v through_o our_o vein_n shall_v diffuse_v itself_o into_o all_o the_o vital_a power_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o make_v we_o more_o able_a and_o strong_a active_a and_o quick_a ready_a and_o forward_o in_o the_o service_n of_o our_o saviour_n we_o shall_v think_v that_o hereby_o we_o may_v get_v great_a victory_n over_o our_o enemy_n if_o we_o do_v not_o betray_v our_o succour_n that_o we_o may_v more_o complete_a our_o conquest_n if_o we_o use_v the_o power_n that_o be_v send_v unto_o we_o we_o shall_v look_v upon_o this_o bread_n as_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o conceive_v that_o we_o take_v the_o cup_n of_o immortality_n into_o our_o hand_n and_o that_o the_o next_o draught_n may_v be_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n when_o our_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v to_o feast_v at_o the_o eternal_a supper_n of_o the_o lamb._n for_o this_o be_v but_o a_o just_a consequence_n of_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n which_o the_o former_a chapter_n treat_v of_o that_o our_o body_n shall_v live_v again_o which_o become_v mortal_a through_o sin_n and_o therefore_o as_o christ_n here_o seal_v unto_o we_o the_o one_o so_o he_o likewise_o wise_a assure_v we_o of_o the_o other_o and_o give_v unto_o we_o the_o earnest_n of_o the_o spirit_n what_o joy_n then_o must_v these_o thought_n needs_o create_v in_o our_o soul_n what_o better_a cheer_n can_v we_o desire_v what_o great_a dainty_n will_v we_o taste_v then_o this_o holy_a feast_n afford_v or_o what_o cause_n will_v we_o have_v of_o thanksgiving_n more_o than_o have_v be_v name_v if_o we_o desire_v a_o consort_n in_o our_o thanksgiving_n and_o to_o have_v a_o harmony_n of_o soul_n while_o we_o sing_v his_o praise_n if_o we_o will_v hear_v some_o voice_n beside_o our_o own_o that_o may_v fill_v up_o our_o joy_n and_o lift_v they_o to_o a_o great_a height_n that_o be_v not_o want_v neither_o as_o the_o next_o chapter_n shall_v declare_v for_o here_o be_v a_o union_n of_o mind_n beget_v and_o a_o sweet_a consent_n of_o heart_n be_v the_o result_n of_o this_o entertainment_n chap._n vi_o as_o this_o sacrament_n be_v a_o mean_n of_o unite_n we_o to_o our_o lord_n by_o faith_n so_o likewise_o of_o unite_n we_o to_o our_o brethren_n by_o love_n it_o knit_v we_o not_o only_o to_o our_o head_n but_o all_o the_o member_n also_o thereby_o be_v more_o endear_v unto_o each_o other_o we_o enter_v here_o into_o a_o strict_a league_n of_o friendship_n with_o they_o as_o well_o as_o into_o a_o covenant_n with_o god_n for_o all_o true_a christian_n be_v not_o only_o of_o the_o family_n of_o god_n but_o his_o child_n and_o near_a relation_n so_o that_o we_o can_v profess_v any_o love_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o they_o all_o but_o we_o must_v at_o the_o same_o time_n embrace_v his_o whole_a progeny_n as_o bear_v his_o character_n and_o have_v in_o they_o those_o very_a thing_n which_o we_o love_v in_o he_o when_o we_o take_v the_o bridegroom_n we_o
and_o as_o you_o see_v a_o mountebank_n commend_v his_o medicine_n his_o balsam_n and_o pomander_n with_o so_o many_o amplification_n and_o lie_v and_o art_n of_o insinuation_n that_o he_o cheat_v poor_a silly_a people_n so_o do_v the_o devil_n puff_v up_o the_o ambitious_a man_n mind_n and_o swell_v a_o molehill_n into_o a_o mountain_n and_o he_o tickle_v the_o wanton_a fancy_n with_o promise_n of_o ravishment_n in_o a_o empty_a pleasure_n and_o to_o the_o covetous_a heart_n he_o say_v thou_o can_v not_o tell_v the_o contentment_n that_o so_o many_o bag_n of_o gold_n or_o such_o a_o fair_a lordship_n will_v give_v thy_o heart_n and_o there_o be_v no_o man_n but_o he_o labour_v to_o cast_v a_o mist_n before_o his_o eye_n and_o to_o dazzle_v he_o with_o some_o glitter_a appearance_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o which_o he_o hope_v to_o work_v his_o end_n upon_o he_o now_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n strike_v through_o all_o those_o paint_a show_n and_o a_o hearty_a belief_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n still_o increase_v make_v all_o these_o shadow_n fly_v away_o it_o will_v not_o let_v we_o be_v deceive_v as_o be_v our_o mother_n eve_n with_o specious_a pretence_n but_o say_v avaunt_o thou_o impostor_n away_o you_o lie_a vanity_n tell_v i_o not_o these_o tale_n for_o his_o testimony_n have_v i_o take_v as_o a_o heritage_n for_o ever_o for_o they_o be_v the_o rejoice_v of_o my_o heart_n psal_n 119.111_o and_o there_o be_v no_o less_o power_n in_o this_o holy_a food_n to_o enervate_a a_o second_o of_o his_o art_n which_o be_v to_o affright_v we_o with_o the_o noise_n of_o danger_n and_o mischief_n that_o shall_v seem_v great_a than_o all_o the_o pleasure_n of_o goodness_n if_o we_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v but_o that_o it_o be_v pleasurable_a he_o put_v strange_a vizard_n upon_o all_o thing_n and_o make_v they_o look_v as_o ugly_a and_o foul_o as_o he_o can_v that_o so_o he_o may_v make_v we_o fly_v from_o the_o trouble_n of_o a_o mortify_a life_n he_o labour_v to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o sadness_n in_o god_n way_n and_o it_o begin_v perhaps_o to_o make_v we_o melancholy_a with_o the_o very_a thought_n of_o it_o and_o if_o this_o will_v not_o do_v he_o will_v stir_v up_o enes_n mie_fw-mi against_o we_o to_o discourage_v we_o our_o own_o friend_n perhaps_o shall_v cast_v we_o off_o or_o the_o fire_n of_o persecution_n shall_v burn_v against_o we_o but_o now_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n will_v make_v we_o rejoice_v even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o tribulation_n here_o we_o embrace_v also_o a_o crucify_a saviour_n and_o there_o be_v no_o better_a livery_n than_o a_o garment_n rend_v and_o tear_v a_o body_n wound_v and_o abuse_v if_o need_n shall_v be_v for_o christ_n sake_n there_o be_v nothing_o can_v affright_v a_o soul_n that_o dwell_v in_o the_o wound_n of_o its_o saviour_n as_o in_o the_o hole_n of_o a_o rock_n nothing_o will_v seem_v difficult_a to_o a_o heart_n that_o be_v fill_v with_o expectation_n to_o dwell_v for_o ever_o in_o his_o embrace_n in_o the_o heaven_n and_o now_o how_o be_v the_o world_n and_o the_o flesh_n confound_v when_o they_o see_v good_a man_n rejoice_v and_o triumph_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o misery_n and_o discouragement_n how_o do_v the_o devil_n howl_v to_o see_v their_o stratagem_n so_o unsuccessfull_a that_o even_o pain_n be_v account_v pleasure_n and_o loss_n be_v account_v gain_n and_o torment_n be_v turn_v into_o joy_n and_o prison_n be_v the_o gatehouse_n of_o paradise_n the_o devil_n you_o will_v say_v will_v study_v to_o be_v revenge_v on_o such_o man_n and_o will_v not_o cease_v to_o vent_v his_o malice_n against_o such_o soul_n and_o see_v he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o do_v they_o harm_v but_o by_o make_v of_o they_o sin_n he_o will_v try_v if_o like_o a_o serpent_n he_o can_v insinuate_v but_o a_o part_n of_o himself_o at_o any_o little_a hole_n he_o will_v persuade_v they_o to_o self-indulgence_n in_o some_o small_a crime_n that_o so_o he_o may_v bring_v they_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n or_o he_o will_v labour_v to_o draw_v they_o if_o it_o may_v be_v within_o the_o verge_n of_o sin_n into_o a_o infection_n place_n into_o the_o society_n of_o a_o temptation_n hope_v that_o by_o little_a degree_n and_o preamble_n he_o may_v make_v way_n for_o sin_n to_o enter_v but_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v here_o much_o inflame_v will_v make_v the_o soul_n of_o such_o a_o quick_a scent_n that_o it_o may_v easy_o perceive_v his_o wile_n love_n do_v extraordinary_o enlighten_v the_o soul_n by_o its_o flame_n and_o will_v make_v it_o more_o discern_v of_o the_o least_o spot_n that_o be_v in_o itself_o and_o of_o the_o least_o danger_n that_o be_v without_o and_o the_o more_o pure_a and_o white_a the_o soul_n grow_v by_o love_n the_o soon_o will_v any_o speck_n of_o filth_n be_v espy_v upon_o it_o the_o more_o full_a of_o light_n it_o be_v the_o more_o imperfection_n will_v it_o take_v notice_n of_o which_o before_o be_v unobserved_a as_o in_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n we_o see_v a_o thousand_o little_a atom_n or_o mote_n which_o before_o be_v not_o discern_v by_o all_o this_o which_o in_o your_o own_o meditation_n may_v be_v enlarge_v you_o see_v what_o strength_n it_o afford_v to_o which_o you_o may_v add_v if_o you_o please_v that_o as_o the_o devil_n have_v bait_n for_o every_o pallate_n and_o can_v humour_v every_o man_n taste_n and_o comply_v with_o all_o complexion_n and_o disposition_n so_o be_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n a_o heavenly_a manna_n which_o taste_v as_o every_o man_n wish_n and_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n speak_v do_v serve_v to_o the_o appetite_n of_o the_o eater_n 21._o wi●●_n 16.20_o 21._o and_o temper_n itself_o to_o every_o man_n like_v be_v able_a to_o give_v they_o all_o content_a three_o medicinam_fw-la i_o fficacia_fw-la ad_fw-la medicinam_fw-la but_o this_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v spiritual_o receive_v be_v not_o only_a food_n and_o meat_n but_o physic_n and_o medicine_n also_o they_o be_v mean_n to_o preserve_v health_n where_o it_o be_v and_o to_o restore_v it_o where_o it_o be_v decay_v though_o this_o may_v seem_v more_o doubtful_a than_o the_o two_o former_a and_o you_o may_v ask_v how_o bread-and-wine_n do_v signify_v any_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n yet_o i_o shall_v show_v you_o that_o be_v denote_v by_o they_o in_o christ_n intention_n more_o than_o any_o thing_n else_o for_o the_o bread_n as_o you_o have_v see_v do_v not_o represent_v the_o body_n and_o flesh_n of_o christ_n bare_o and_o in_o general_a as_o it_o be_v the_o food_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o in_o a_o more_o especial_a manner_n as_o the_o flesh_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n whereby_o it_o become_v not_o only_o our_o meat_n but_o our_o medicine_n also_o the_o food_n we_o eat_v be_v in_o remembrance_n that_o christ_n die_v for_o sin_n and_o so_o it_o be_v heal_v to_o our_o soul_n and_o kill_v to_o our_o sin_n it_o purge_v away_o our_o iniquity_n and_o purify_v our_o heart_n and_o so_o christ_n blood_n be_v here_o consider_v as_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o blood_n of_o atonement_n and_o propitiation_n for_o we_o and_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o receive_v as_o have_v be_v say_v bare_a bread_n and_o wine_n but_o bread_n break_v and_o wine_n pour_v out_o and_o here_o you_o may_v take_v notice_n of_o the_o reason_n why_o christ_n do_v institute_v bread_n and_o wine_n rather_o than_o flesh_n to_o represent_v himself_o by_o unto_o we_o not_o because_o flesh_n be_v use_v by_o the_o jew_n in_o their_o sacrifice_n for_o so_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n nor_o only_a because_o this_o be_v the_o common_a food_n and_o nourishment_n for_o the_o body_n for_o so_o be_v flesh_n also_o but_o it_o be_v likely_a christ_n choose_v thing_n without_o life_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o blood_n viz._n bread_n and_o wine_n because_o he_o will_v show_v that_o no_o creature_n be_v any_o more_o to_o lose_v its_o life_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n and_o that_o no_o more_o blood_n be_v to_o be_v shed_v for_o expiation_n of_o it_o the_o passeover_n which_o we_o may_v call_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v bloody_a to_o denote_v christ_n blood_n that_o shall_v be_v shed_v but_o now_o that_o it_o be_v shed_v the_o sacrament_n which_o represent_v it_o as_o already_o do_v be_v without_o any_o bloody_a thing_n he_o be_v show_v to_o we_o as_o one_o that_o have_v die_v by_o this_o break_a bread_n and_o wine_n effuse_v and_o he_o show_v we_o likewise_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o death_n no_o more_o blood_n shed_v for_o we_o a_o
mensa_fw-la mystica_fw-la or_o a_o discourse_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o which_o the_o end_n of_o its_o institution_n be_v so_o manifest_v our_o address_n to_o it_o so_o direct_v our_o behaviour_n there_o and_o afterward_o so_o compose_v that_o we_o may_v not_o lose_v the_o benefit_n which_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v by_o it_o by_o simon_n patrick_n d._n d._n minister_n of_o god_n word_n at_o batersea_n in_o surrey_n 1_o cor._n 11.24_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o london_n print_v by_o a._n m._n for_o f._n tylon_n at_o the_o three_o dagger_n in_o fleetstreet_n 1667._o to_o the_o honourable_a sir_n walter_n st._n john_n baronet_n and_o the_o lady_n johanna_n st._n john_n his_o wife_n these_o meditation_n be_v conceive_v and_o bear_v in_o your_o house_n i_o take_v it_o to_o be_v a_o piece_n of_o justice_n that_o they_o shall_v lay_v themselves_o at_o your_o foot_n and_o come_v abroad_o into_o the_o world_n under_o your_o name_n and_o long_o before_o this_o have_v they_o come_v to_o tender_v their_o service_n to_o you_o have_v the_o press_n be_v favourable_a to_o they_o and_o not_o let_v they_o stick_v long_o there_o than_o they_o do_v in_o my_o mind_n before_o they_o can_v be_v bring_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n love_n have_v as_o great_a a_o power_n to_o make_v servant_n as_o any_o thing_n else_o and_o no_o bondman_n be_v fast_o chain_v than_o he_o that_o be_v tie_v by_o the_o band_n of_o his_o own_o affection_n a_o captive_n of_o that_o quality_n i_o must_v needs_o profess_v myself_o have_v such_o a_o feel_n of_o the_o obligation_n you_o have_v lay_v upon_o i_o that_o i_o be_o not_o free_a to_o love_v you_o or_o not_o to_o love_v you_o but_o be_o hold_v under_o such_o a_o sweet_a tyranny_n that_o i_o can_v so_o much_o as_o desire_v to_o recover_v my_o former_a liberty_n these_o thought_n therefore_o be_v the_o birth_n of_o one_o so_o bind_v to_o serve_v you_o both_o by_o your_o favour_n and_o his_o own_o affection_n 21.4_o exod._n 21.4_o according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o hebrew_n you_o may_v challenge_v a_o right_n in_o they_o see_v i_o be_o you_o as_o much_o as_o my_o own_o i_o know_v that_o i_o be_o write_v to_o you_o and_o not_o of_o you_o and_o that_o you_o do_v not_o expect_v my_o commendation_n but_o my_o counsel_n for_o if_o you_o do_v you_o will_v not_o deserve_v commendation_n there_o be_v so_o much_o flattery_n many_o time_n in_o these_o address_n that_o man_n will_v not_o believe_v we_o when_o we_o say_v true_a and_o so_o we_o displease_v while_o we_o study_v to_o please_v the_o world_n likewise_o be_v so_o envious_a that_o they_o never_o think_v more_o of_o our_o fault_n than_o when_o we_o be_v praise_v but_o yet_o to_o tell_v you_o of_o your_o kindness_n to_o i_o though_o you_o do_v not_o expect_v it_o methinks_v i_o may_v be_v allow_v be_v it_o not_o that_o then_o i_o shall_v commend_v myself_o for_o a_o grateful_a person_n after_o i_o have_v decline_v to_o commend_v you_o but_o see_v that_o be_v no_o such_o great_a virtue_n that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v tempt_v to_o be_v proud_a of_o it_o i_o shall_v say_v thus_o much_o that_o of_o all_o the_o cause_n that_o be_v usual_o assign_v of_o these_o dedication_n i_o can_v find_v the_o impulse_n of_o none_o so_o strong_a as_o that_o of_o love_n and_o gratitude_n which_o bid_v i_o bind_v my_o executor_n by_o these_o present_n if_o these_o paper_n can_v live_v long_o than_o i_o to_o acknowledge_v your_o love_n and_o ever_o be_v mindful_a of_o it_o to_o you_o and_o you_o and_o although_o i_o may_v just_o suspect_v that_o they_o have_v not_o strength_n enough_o to_o live_v to_o any_o great_a age_n yet_o if_o they_o can_v increase_v your_o piety_n but_o in_o the_o least_o degree_n that_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o never_o die_v and_o will_v be_v a_o immortal_a witness_n of_o my_o endeavour_n to_o serve_v you_o to_o the_o study_n of_o that_o it_o be_v that_o i_o do_v most_o affectionate_o exhort_v you_o do_v well_o and_o you_o shall_v hear_v well_o though_o i_o and_o all_o other_o pen_n lie_v asleep_a piety_n be_v the_o true_a and_o most_o ancient_a nobility_n as_o wickedness_n be_v the_o great_a and_o base_a degeneracy_n there_o be_v no_o such_o way_n to_o exalt_v your_o family_n as_o to_o make_v a_o strict_a alliance_n with_o god_n and_o to_o draw_v he_o into_o your_o kindred_n nothing_o can_v so_o enrich_v your_o blood_n as_o to_o contract_v a_o affinity_n with_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n but_o if_o earthly_a honour_n be_v of_o any_o value_n as_o it_o may_v conduce_v to_o the_o better_a serve_v of_o god_n you_o have_v the_o favour_n grant_v unto_o you_o to_o be_v noble_a both_o in_o your_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o be_v ally_v both_o to_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n and_o of_o great_a men._n the_o saint_n in_o your_o name_n may_v put_v you_o in_o mind_n to_o be_v saint_n in_o yourselves_o the_o two_o mullet_n or_o star_n in_o your_o coat_n of_o arm_n bid_v you_o shine_v like_o two_o light_n in_o the_o world_n the_o occasion_n of_o your_o bear_v they_o which_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o be_v because_o your_o progenitor_n war_v in_o the_o holy_a land_n may_v put_v you_o in_o remembrance_n to_o strive_v and_o fight_v to_o be_v make_v free_a of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n that_o city_n of_o god_n that_o be_v above_o as_o these_o star_n be_v bear_v in_o their_o ensign_n in_o that_o expedition_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o turkish_a crescent_n so_o let_v they_o put_v you_o in_o mind_n to_o keep_v the_o world_n still_o under_o your_o foot_n and_o to_o scorn_v these_o mutable_a and_o moon-like_a thing_n parennis_fw-la see_v cambden_n in_o glamorganshire_n nympha_fw-la fluit_fw-la propius_fw-la fons_n refluit_fw-la illa_fw-la recedit_fw-la iste_fw-la redit_fw-la sic_fw-la livor_fw-la in_o st_z &_o pugaa_n parennis_fw-la as_o much_o as_o you_o do_v mahomet_n and_o the_o turk_n there_o be_v a_o spring_n in_o that_o country_n where_o your_o name_n first_o take_v root_n in_o british_a soil_n which_o be_v very_o low_a and_o empty_a of_o water_n when_o the_o sea_n flow_v and_o swell_v the_o neighbour_a river_n ogmar_n and_o again_o ascend_v and_o fill_v itself_o when_o the_o sea_n retire_v out_o of_o the_o channel_n it_o will_v be_v a_o most_o lovely_a sight_n both_o to_o god_n and_o man_n to_o see_v you_o humble_a and_o lowly_a in_o the_o high_a tide_n of_o a_o swell_a fortune_n and_o if_o your_o fullness_n shall_v abate_v and_o draw_v back_o into_o the_o ocean_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v to_o behold_v the_o elevation_n of_o your_o spirit_n and_o the_o greatness_n of_o your_o mind_n rise_v above_o all_o the_o reach_n of_o these_o worldly_a change_n then_o will_v you_o most_o true_o imitate_v those_o star_n in_o your_o escutchion_n which_o be_v not_o see_v in_o the_o day_n and_o shine_v most_o bright_o in_o the_o night_n but_o your_o name_n bid_v you_o above_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v full_a of_o love_n both_o to_o each_o other_o and_o towards_o all_o man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o beside_o that_o john_n in_o the_o hebrew_n language_n carry_v in_o its_o signification_n graciousness_n and_o kindness_n the_o belove_a disciple_n be_v the_o first_o of_o your_o name_n degenerate_a not_o i_o beseech_v you_o from_o so_o worthy_a a_o precedent_n but_o embrace_v with_o as_o dear_a a_o affection_n as_o two_o st._n john_n will_v have_v do_v each_o other_o that_o great_a saint_n have_v this_o always_o in_o his_o mouth_n little_a child_n love_v one_o another_o the_o same_o have_v you_o always_o in_o your_o heart_n see_v you_o be_v not_o only_a christian_n but_o of_o the_o same_o family_n and_o of_o the_o same_o name_n which_o carry_v a_o remembrance_n of_o that_o divine_a person_n the_o athenian_n promise_v themselves_o nothing_o but_o triumph_n in_o the_o sicilian_a war_n because_o their_o general_n nicias_n derive_v his_o name_n from_o victory_n which_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o man_n have_v a_o good_a presage_n in_o it_o and_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_a philosopher_n do_v serious_o dispute_v whether_o there_o be_v not_o some_o secret_a fate_n or_o providence_n in_o it_o cratilo_n plato_n in_o cratilo_n that_o man_n shall_v have_v name_n give_v they_o that_o do_v so_o exactly-agree_a with_o their_o after_o good_a or_o bad_a fortune_n i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o think_v i_o impertinent_a therefore_o that_o i_o have_v urge_v you_o so_o much_o with_o your_o name_n and_o that_o you_o will_v not_o let_v it_o be_v give_v you_o for_o nothing_o and_o though_o that_o nicias_n by_o his_o great_a overthrow_n do_v disappoint_v the_o hope_n which_o his_o fellow_n citizen_n conceive_v from_o his_o name_n yet_o you_o will_v have_v a_o care_n that_o you_o deceive_v not_o the_o expectation_n
both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n from_o you_o which_o be_v ground_v upon_o a_o better_a foundation_n lamprid._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n severus_n imperator_fw-la gravis_fw-la &_o vir_fw-la nominis_fw-la s●i_fw-la dicitur_fw-la lamprid._n i_o very_o believe_v that_o you_o will_v endeavour_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o greek_n call_v they_o person_n of_o your_o own_o name_n and_o as_o the_o apostle_n pray_v for_o his_o thessalonian_o 1_o thes_n 3.12_o 13._o you_o will_v increase_v and_o abound_v in_o love_n one_o towards_o another_o and_o towards_o all_o man_n to_o the_o end_n that_o you_o may_v establish_v your_o heart_n unblameable_a in_o holiness_n before_o god_n even_o our_o father_n at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n with_o all_o his_o saint_n let_v i_o speak_v to_o you_o and_o all_o other_o once_o more_o in_o the_o word_n of_o another_o apostle_n 3.8_o 1_o pet._n 3.8_o final_o be_v you_o all_o of_o one_o mind_n have_v compassion_n one_o of_o another_o love_v as_o brethren_n be_v pitiful_a be_v courteous_a but_o what_o need_v i_o insist_v so_o long_o on_o this_o who_o find_v you_o so_o full_a of_o love_n towards_o i_o it_o be_v a_o delightful_a subject_n and_o therefore_o you_o will_v pardon_v my_o vehemence_n in_o it_o but_o though_o it_o be_v delightful_a yet_o i_o will_v refrain_v myself_o from_o enumerate_v my_o particular_a obligation_n because_o i_o know_v sir_n that_o you_o do_v not_o do_v your_o kindness_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v talk_v of_o and_o for_o you_o madam_n who_o carry_v kindness_n in_o both_o your_o name_n i_o know_v also_o that_o you_o love_v to_o be_v conceal_v and_o that_o your_o love_n shall_v have_v none_o to_o speak_v of_o it_o but_o itself_o and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v forbear_v to_o say_v how_o much_o at_o least_o to_o i_o you_o answer_v the_o double_a remembrance_n you_o have_v in_o they_o it_o will_v be_v more_o acceptable_a i_o know_v to_o you_o both_o if_o i_o turn_v this_o address_n to_o you_o into_o a_o prayer_n to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v do_v all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o for_o you_o and_o to_o that_o god_n of_o peace_n from_o who_o all_o good_a come_v i_o humble_o bow_v my_o knee_n that_o he_o will_v make_v you_o perfect_a in_o every_o good_a work_n to_o do_v his_o will_n work_v in_o you_o that_o which_o be_v well-pleasing_a in_o his_o sight_n through_o jesus_n christ_n 13.21_o hebr._n 13.21_o to_o who_o be_v glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o the_o more_o particular_a petition_n that_o concern_v you_o i_o shall_v put_v up_o alone_o and_o ever_o remain_v what_o i_o be_o much_o engage_v to_o be_v your_o affectionate_a friend_n and_o servant_n si._n patrick_n from_o your_o house_n at_o batersea_n january_n 27._o 1659._o 60_o the_o introduction_n show_v 1._o that_o god_n manifest_v himself_o to_o our_o sense_n 2._o that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v fit_a thing_n for_o the_o represent_v our_o lord_n to_o we_o 3._o the_o first_o reason_n of_o the_o celebration_n of_o this_o supper_n and_o the_o fit_a time_n for_o we_o to_o do_v this_o that_o christ_n command_v we_o 4._o which_o be_v but_o a_o reiteration_n of_o what_o be_v do_v in_o baptism_n 5._o as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o what_o i_o have_v brief_o write_v on_o that_o subject_n 6._o and_o if_o we_o will_v extend_v this_o thing_n further_o we_o may_v lose_v all_o the_o papist_n in_o danger_n of_o this_o who_o speak_v not_o the_o language_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n 7._o the_o design_n of_o this_o present_a discourse_n 8._o the_o allege_v of_o some_o heathen_a custom_n and_o principle_n need_v be_v no_o offence_n to_o any_o but_o may_v be_v a_o help_n if_o they_o please_v god_n who_o be_v simple_a and_o remove_v far_o from_o all_o sense_n consider_v the_o weakness_n of_o man_n soul_n and_o how_o unable_a he_o be_v to_o conceive_v of_o thing_n spiritual_a pure_o and_o naked_o in_o themselves_o and_o yet_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o be_v better_o know_v unto_o we_o and_o to_o make_v himself_o more_o manifest_a than_o ever_o be_v please_v in_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n to_o dwell_v in_o flesh_n and_o appear_v here_o in_o the_o person_n of_o his_o son_n who_o be_v make_v like_o to_o man_n to_o show_v what_o god_n be_v in_o our_o nature_n this_o son_n of_o he_o be_v to_o die_v and_o part_n with_o his_o life_n for_o great_a end_n and_o purpose_n which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o forget_v be_v please_v to_o take_v the_o same_o course_n to_o convey_v to_o our_o mind_n spiritual_a notion_n by_o outward_a and_o sensible_a sign_n and_o to_o impress_v on_o our_o heart_n what_o he_o have_v do_v and_o suffer_v by_o a_o visible_a representation_n of_o it_o in_o bodily_a thing_n and_o not_o only_o by_o a_o plain_a description_n of_o it_o in_o the_o gospel_n he_o know_v very_o well_o that_o a_o picture_n and_o image_n of_o a_o thing_n do_v more_o affect_v we_o than_o a_o historical_a narration_n and_o that_o the_o more_o lively_a and_o express_v that_o image_n be_v the_o more_o lively_a motion_n it_o make_v within_o we_o a_o dead_a corpse_n be_v but_o the_o shadow_n of_o a_o man_n and_o yet_o we_o find_v that_o our_o soul_n be_v more_o assault_v and_o all_o our_o passion_n stir_v by_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o face_n of_o a_o dead_a friend_n then_o by_o all_o the_o report_n that_o be_v bring_v we_o of_o his_o death_n and_o long_o after_o his_o corpse_n be_v moulder_a in_o the_o grave_a if_o we_o see_v a_o child_n of_o his_o that_o have_v his_o exact_a feature_n manner_n and_o carriage_n it_o renew_v a_o fresh_a remembrance_n in_o we_o of_o that_o person_n and_o stir_v up_o the_o image_n that_o be_v in_o our_o mind_n more_o powerful_o than_o we_o can_v do_v ourselves_o by_o reflection_n upon_o they_o but_o though_o god_n be_v willing_a to_o teach_v we_o by_o outward_a and_o sensible_a representation_n 2._o sect._n 2._o yet_o he_o think_v it_o both_o unsafe_a and_o likewise_o unfit_a and_o no_o way_n conduce_v to_o the_o spiritual_a end_n he_o intend_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o picture_n of_o christ_n or_o a_o image_n of_o he_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n there_o be_v too_o much_o of_o sense_n in_o the_o tragical_a and_o theatrical_a representation_n which_o be_v make_v by_o some_o papist_n of_o christ_n suffering_n the_o outward_a action_n be_v in_o danger_n not_o only_o to_o take_v place_n of_o all_o spiritual_a affection_n but_o quite_o to_o thrust_v they_o out_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o ear_n be_v so_o full_o possess_v that_o their_o object_n work_v by_o their_o own_o natural_a strength_n and_o not_o by_o the_o soul_n consider_v and_o meditate_v power_n our_o saviour_n therefore_o that_o he_o may_v both_o help_v the_o soul_n and_o leave_v it_o something_o for_o to_o do_v in_o make_v of_o its_o own_o thought_n and_o form_v its_o own_o apprehension_n and_o resentment_n have_v give_v we_o only_a bread_n and_o wine_n as_o remembrance_n of_o he_o in_o which_o we_o see_v so_o much_o as_o to_o awaken_v our_o soul_n but_o not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o keep_v they_o awake_v without_o themselves_o they_o show_v christ_n to_o our_o sense_n but_o more_o to_o our_o mind_n that_o so_o both_o may_v be_v employ_v but_o the_o mind_n may_v do_v most_o by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o indeed_o these_o be_v very_o fit_a thing_n upon_o other_o reason_n to_o serve_v our_o saviour_n design_n because_o first_o of_o all_o they_o be_v similiar_a body_n and_o not_o consist_v of_o heterogeneous_a part_n i._n e._n their_o part_n be_v not_o of_o different_a kind_n as_o the_o part_n of_o our_o flesh_n be_v the_o flesh_n of_o a_o man_n be_v compose_v of_o vein_n and_o artery_n and_o nerve_n and_o blood_n and_o muscle_n and_o divers_a skin_n but_o every_o part_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v like_o the_o other_o and_o have_v nothing_o in_o it_o different_a from_o its_o neighbour_n every_o piece_n of_o the_o one_o and_o every_o drop_n of_o the_o other_o do_v as_o much_o represent_v what_o be_v intend_v as_o any_o other_o part_n do_v and_o all_o the_o part_n together_o make_v one_o body_n of_o the_o very_a same_o sort_n and_o yet_o second_o the_o part_n of_o these_o body_n be_v easy_o separate_v one_o from_o another_o which_o make_v they_o more_o fit_a to_o be_v communicate_v and_o divide_v among_o a_o great_a many_o who_o all_o notwithstanding_o do_v receive_v as_o it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n and_o three_o they_o be_v constant_o use_v at_o all_o feast_n and_o never_o omit_v whereas_o other_o thing_n have_v their_o season_n and_o can_v do_v continual_a service_n at_o our_o table_n to_o which_o you_o may_v add_v fourthly_a that_o they_o be_v bring_v by_o
give_v some_o brief_a touch_n upon_o those_o thing_n 5._o §._o 5._o which_o you_o can_v without_o trouble_n enlarge_v in_o your_o own_o thought_n which_o be_v one_o reason_n why_o i_o shall_v spare_v myself_o any_o long_a pain_n about_o they_o and_o hold_v another_o course_n in_o this_o follow_a treatise_n for_o our_o part_n we_o do_v here_o profess_v ourselves_o of_o the_o religion_n that_o christ_n have_v institute_v and_o teach_v we_o as_o you_o will_v see_v more_o large_o in_o the_o ensue_a book_n we_o do_v at_o once_o in_o this_o feast_n both_o show_v our_o gladness_n and_o assure_v he_o of_o our_o affection_n sin_n be_v here_o represent_v so_o unto_o we_o that_o it_o can_v but_o make_v our_o wound_n bleed_v afresh_o the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n death_n do_v pierce_v our_o heart_n again_o with_o godly_a sorrow_n and_o revive_v the_o smart_n and_o pain_n which_o the_o sense_n of_o sin_n have_v create_v in_o our_o soul_n i'faith_o likewise_o here_o be_v as_o greedy_a of_o its_o food_n as_o a_o hungry_a mouth_n be_v of_o its_o meat_n and_o obedience_n be_v hereby_o confirm_v because_o we_o receive_v lively_a nourishment_n into_o our_o soul_n which_o will_v make_v we_o strong_a to_o execute_v the_o will_n of_o our_o lord_n our_o suffering_n also_o with_o christ_n we_o profess_v more_o lively_a than_o by_o water_n even_o by_o blood_n itself_o when_o our_o saviour_n say_v in_o the_o six_o of_o s._n john_n that_o we_o must_v eat_v of_o his_o flesh_n he_o mean_v we_o must_v receive_v himself_o and_o digest_v his_o doctrine_n but_o see_v the_o word_n flesh_n in_o scripture-phrase_n signify_v very_o frequent_o weakness_n and_o meanness_n he_o intend_v that_o we_o must_v receive_v he_o so_o as_o to_o partake_v with_o he_o in_o his_o poor_a low_a and_o suffer_a condition_n and_o this_o we_o do_v most_o notable_o protest_v that_o we_o will_v when_o we_o receive_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o break_a body_n for_o the_o bread_n break_v do_v not_o only_o argue_v it_o to_o be_v fit_a for_o food_n but_o that_o first_o we_o must_v be_v slay_v and_o mortify_v and_o likewise_o receive_v such_o strength_n that_o if_o he_o call_v we_o unto_o death_n we_o must_v undergo_v it_o we_o own_o hereby_o the_o covenant_n of_o suffering_n and_o feed_v upon_o a_o dead_a saviour_n which_o make_v theophylact_v give_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n why_o christ_n give_v thanks_o when_o he_o break_v the_o bread_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o so_o we_o may_v receive_v martyrdom_n thankful_o it_o be_v a_o feast_n which_o we_o partake_v of_o and_o yet_o signify_v suffering_n but_o let_v it_o not_o seem_v strange_a for_o we_o must_v count_v it_o all_o joy_n when_o we_o fall_v into_o divers_a temptation_n neither_o do_v it_o less_o signify_v and_o seal_v on_o god_n part_n be_v a_o manifest_a token_n of_o his_o great_a and_o inexpressible_a love_n in_o give_v of_o his_o own_o son_n to_o death_n even_o to_o the_o curse_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o we_o here_o he_o take_v we_o not_o only_o under_o his_o wing_n as_o i_o say_v he_o do_v in_o baptism_n but_o he_o take_v we_o into_o his_o arm_n he_o take_v we_o to_o himself_o and_o he_o give_v himself_o whole_o unto_o we_o and_o then_o for_o remission_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v manifest_a to_o be_v the_o purchase_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o so_o must_v needs_o further_o here_o be_v assure_v to_o all_o good_a soul_n and_o it_o be_v the_o very_a thing_n that_o be_v express_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o there_o be_v not_o so_o many_o spirit_n contain_v in_o the_o wine_n as_o there_o be_v lively_a influence_n of_o god_n good_a spirit_n hereby_o convey_v to_o pious_a heart_n we_o have_v assurance_n likewise_o give_v by_o these_o thing_n that_o he_o will_v not_o take_v his_o holy_a spirit_n from_o we_o but_o that_o he_o will_v let_v it_o always_o diffuse_v itself_o through_o all_o our_o power_n and_o as_o for_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a we_o be_v make_v as_o it_o be_v of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n and_o incorporate_v into_o he_o he_o can_v lose_v none_o of_o his_o member_n but_o all_o that_o eat_v of_o his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v of_o his_o blood_n as_o they_o ought_v shall_v be_v raise_v again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n we_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n which_o will_v make_v we_o live_v for_o ever_o and_o we_o receive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ephes_n epist_n ad_fw-la ephes_n as_o ignatius_n speak_v a_o antidote_n against_o death_n a_o medicine_n to_o preserve_v we_o from_o corruption_n this_o the_o ancient_a christian_n think_v to_o be_v so_o full_o assure_v to_o we_o in_o the_o eucharist_n that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o argument_n whereby_o irenaeus_n confute_v the_o valentinian_o who_o deny_v the_o rise_n again_o of_o the_o body_n after_o it_o be_v dead_a how_o can_v that_o flesh_n be_v corrupt_v 34._o l._n 4._o adv_n haeres_fw-la cap._n 34._o and_o not_o live_v again_o which_o be_v nourish_v by_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n either_o let_v they_o change_v their_o mind_n or_o else_o abstain_v from_o this_o offer_n for_o as_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n perceive_v the_o invocation_n of_o god_n be_v no_o long_o common_a bread_n but_o the_o eucharist_n consist_v of_o something_o earthly_a and_o something_o heavenly_a even_o so_o our_o body_n perceive_v this_o eucharist_n be_v not_o now_o corruptible_a but_o have_v the_o hope_n of_o a_o resurrection_n 2._o l._n 5._o cap._n 2._o thus_o he_o who_o have_v more_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o another_o book_n herein_o likewise_o god_n give_v we_o a_o foretaste_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o joy_n to_o come_v as_o will_v be_v make_v more_o manifest_a in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n and_o thus_o far_o we_o may_v grant_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o melchizedeck_v to_o have_v be_v sacramental_a that_o they_o be_v give_v to_o abraham_n as_o earnest_n for_o to_o secure_v he_o of_o the_o land_n flow_v with_o milk_n and_o honey_n by_o this_o banquet_n or_o entertainment_n which_o the_o royal_a priest_n make_v he_o he_o take_v livery_n of_o seisin_n as_o our_o lawyer_n speak_v of_o the_o promise_v land_n and_o in_o that_o very_a place_n it_o be_v most_o likely_a where_o god_n intend_v the_o mother-city_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v be_v this_o conveyance_n make_v to_o abraham_n seed_n this_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v most_o certain_a evidence_n that_o his_o posterity_n shall_v eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o that_o land_n wherein_o now_o he_o be_v a_o stranger_n and_o just_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n do_v god_n give_v unto_o faithful_a soul_n this_o bless_a bread_n and_o wine_n as_o a_o antepast_n of_o his_o eternal_a love_n and_o hereby_o they_o do_v begin_v to_o taste_v of_o the_o heavenly_a feast_n that_o they_o shall_v celebrate_v above_o they_o have_v herein_o a_o right_n make_v they_o unto_o heaven_n and_o a_o kind_n of_o delivery_n of_o possession_n which_o shall_v short_o be_v complete_v by_o a_o actual_a enjoyment_n they_o that_o will_v more_o than_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o in_o this_o sacrament_n 6._o sect._n 6._o be_v in_o danger_n to_o have_v nothing_o at_o all_o as_o they_o shall_v have_v while_o they_o think_v that_o christ_n be_v receive_v coporal_o by_o they_o they_o may_v neglect_v the_o spiritual_a eat_n and_o while_o they_o chew_v he_o as_o it_o be_v between_o their_o tooth_n their_o soul_n may_v feel_v but_o little_a of_o he_o jambl._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d e●nap_n in_o vita_fw-la jambl._n for_o just_a as_o it_o be_v with_o those_o that_o will_v paint_v a_o beautiful_a person_n while_o they_o think_v to_o add_v something_o of_o their_o own_o to_o the_o face_n thereby_o to_o make_v he_o look_v better_a than_o he_o be_v they_o spoil_v the_o comeliness_n of_o the_o picture_n and_o miss_n both_o of_o his_o face_n and_o likewise_o of_o his_o true_a beauty_n so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o modern_a church_n of_o rome_n which_o will_v make_v religion_n seem_v as_o fair_a and_o beautiful_a yea_o as_o gaudy_a and_o trim_a as_o their_o fancy_n can_v devise_v but_o by_o add_v their_o own_o invention_n and_o novel_a fashion_n they_o quite_o spoil_v both_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o beauty_n of_o it_o which_o they_o study_v to_o adorn_v while_o they_o think_v to_o offer_v a_o proper_a sacrifice_n they_o many_o time_n offer_v none_o at_o all_o and_o whilst_o they_o think_v it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n both_o for_o quick_a and_o dead_a they_o rely_v so_o much_o upon_o it_o that_o it_o prove_v to_o be_v for_o neither_o by_o make_v it_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o bone_n they_o make_v christ_n the_o
of_o the_o truth_n they_o may_v cause_v by_o their_o artifice_n of_o word_n to_o pass_v for_o fable_n in_o the_o world_n procli_n marinus_n in_o vita_fw-la procli_n and_o it_o be_v very_o considerable_a i_o think_v that_o marinus_n report_v of_o proclas_n though_o a_o philosopher_n of_o young_a time_n how_o that_o he_o observe_v the_o roman_a the_o phrygian_a and_o the_o egyptian_a feast_n with_o all_o new_a moon_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o a_o most_o splendid_a and_o ceremonious_a manner_n and_o in_o brief_a he_o say_v that_o he_o keep_v religious_o the_o most_o famous_a feast_n of_o every_o nation_n after_o their_o own_o manner_n and_o custom_n and_o compose_v a_o hymn_n which_o he_o sing_v contain_v the_o praise_n of_o the_o god_n of_o several_a nation_n for_o he_o have_v this_o say_n frequent_o in_o his_o mouth_n that_o a_o philosopher_n ought_v not_o to_o address_v his_o service_n to_o the_o fashion_n of_o one_o city_n or_o some_o country_n rite_n but_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d skill_v in_o the_o sacra_fw-la or_o holy_a office_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a that_o this_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o several_a philosopher_n before_o he_o it_o be_v a_o character_n that_o pausanias_n give_v of_o the_o greek_n in_o general_a that_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d baot_n in_o baot_n strange_o prone_a to_o have_v the_o thing_n of_o another_o country_n in_o great_a admiration_n than_o those_o of_o their_o own_o which_o agree_v very_o well_o with_o what_o the_o scripture_n say_v of_o they_o that_o the_o athenian_n be_v always_o hear_v or_o tell_v some_o new_a thing_n act_v 17.21_o and_o that_o even_o in_o matter_n of_o their_o religion_n they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d very_o apt_a to_o reverence_v every_o deity_n that_o they_o hear_v of_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o they_o worship_v the_o unknown_a god_n which_o s._n paul_n tell_v they_o be_v the_o true_a and_o live_a god_n which_o make_v all_o thing_n this_o god_n be_v worship_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o as_o nazianzen_n say_v that_o when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o elysian_a field_n they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 20._o orct._n 20._o in_o a_o conceit_n of_o our_o paradise_n which_o they_o take_v out_o of_o moses_n his_o book_n with_o the_o change_n of_o the_o name_n only_o so_o i_o may_v say_v that_o when_o they_o invent_v the_o rest_n of_o their_o poetical_a divinity_n their_o dream_n be_v the_o offspring_n of_o some_o real_a thing_n which_o they_o have_v see_v or_o hear_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o god_n i_o will_v instance_n but_o in_o four_o which_o be_v not_o common_o observe_v so_o far_o as_o i_o have_v read_v hercules_n be_v call_v by_o the_o dark_a poet_n lycophron_n lycophron_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n the_o three_o night_n lion_n who_o the_o sharp-toothed_a dog_n of_o neptune_n swallow_v up_o within_o his_o jaw_n this_o dog_n of_o neptune_n the_o sea-god_n say_v isaac_n tzetzes_n be_v the_o whale_n and_o hercules_n have_v the_o epithet_n of_o three-night_n because_o be_v swallow_v he_o lay_v three_o day_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o whale_n which_o he_o call_v night_n because_o the_o belly_n of_o the_o fish_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o all_o light_n and_o black_a as_o the_o night_n this_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v but_o a_o corruption_n of_o the_o story_n of_o jonah_n which_o may_v well_o be_v know_v to_o the_o heathen_n and_o easy_o apply_v to_o hercules_n for_o it_o be_v observe_v by_o d._n kimchi_n that_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o name_n of_o israel_n in_o all_o the_o prophecy_n of_o jonah_n because_o he_o be_v send_v only_o to_o heathen_n and_o he_o be_v embark_v in_o a_o vessel_n go_v to_o tarshish_n or_o tartessus_n in_o spain_n as_o bochartus_n have_v prove_v in_o which_o part_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v well_o know_v the_o tyrian_a hercules_n be_v most_o worship_v now_o it_o have_v be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o world_n to_o attribute_v all_o strange_a thing_n that_o be_v do_v by_o other_o to_o some_o one_o person_n famous_a among_o they_o as_o all_o witty_a story_n and_o jest_n be_v at_o this_o day_n father_v upon_o he_o that_o be_v most_o note_a by_o we_o to_o abound_v with_o they_o and_o so_o they_o may_v easy_o tell_v this_o story_n of_o their_o hercules_n when_o it_o be_v once_o noise_v among_o they_o because_o they_o ascribe_v all_o wonder_n and_o miracle_n to_o he_o a_o second_o instance_n i_o may_v give_v in_o the_o fable_n of_o iphigenia_n and_o julia_n luperca_n the_o former_a of_o which_o be_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v to_o diana_n a_o hare_n or_o as_o some_o say_v a_o heifer_n come_v run_v in_o the_o middle_n and_o thicket_n as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o greek_a army_n which_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o their_o prophet_n they_o offer_v instead_o of_o she_o the_o latter_a have_v the_o knife_n just_a at_o her_o throat_n as_o it_o be_v at_o isaac_n a_o eagle_n come_v and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d snatch_v away_o the_o knife_n out_o of_o the_o priest_n hand_n and_o throw_v a_o young_a panther_n near_o to_o the_o altar_n which_o they_o offer_v for_o she_o these_o two_o story_n be_v but_o a_o depravation_n of_o two_o in_o the_o scripture_n concern_v isaac_n and_o jeptha_n daughter_n which_o they_o have_v jumble_v together_o and_o therefore_o the_o same_o isaac_n tzetzes_n in_o his_o scholia_fw-la upon_o lycophron_n add_v these_o word_n to_o these_o story_n you_o can_v but_o remember_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o ram_n which_o instead_o of_o saac_n be_v catch_v in_o the_o bush_n sabek_n so_o the_o lxx_o do_v read_v those_o word_n 22._o &_o 13._o as_o i_o think_v i_o shall_v have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v not_o note_v it_o to_o my_o hand_n but_o those_o verse_n of_o homer_n on_o which_o porphyry_n write_v his_o book_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v as_o like_a to_o david_n word_n in_o psal_n 139.15_o as_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v if_o we_o receive_v porphyry_n comment_n upon_o they_o and_o according_a to_o tatianus_n his_o computation_n homer_n live_v not_o long_o after_o his_o time_n and_o so_o may_v have_v some_o knowledge_n of_o his_o song_n david_n word_n be_v i_o be_o fearful_o and_o wonderful_o make_v etc._n etc._n and_o curious_o wrought_v in_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n where_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o render_v curious_o wrought_v be_v by_o val._n schindler_n interpret_v contextus_fw-la sum_fw-la i_o be_o weave_v and_o the_o verb_n do_v signify_v acu_fw-la pingere_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o work_v curious_o with_o a_o needle_n or_o otherwise_o the_o word_n of_o homer_n which_o i_o say_v do_v answer_n to_o these_o and_o describe_v the_o body_n of_o man_n as_o wrought_v in_o a_o loom_n and_o rare_o weave_v be_v in_o his_o story_n of_o ulysses_n n._n odyss_n n._n where_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o cave_n and_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o do_v the_o nymph_n a_o wonder_n it_o be_v to_o see_v their_o purple_a garment_n weave_v most_o curious_o from_o off_o long_a stone_n their_o thread_n be_v draw_v and_o david_n say_v that_o he_o be_v wrought_v in_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n i._n e._n the_o womb_n so_o here_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o antrum_n or_o cave_n in_o which_o the_o nymph_n or_o soul_n make_v body_n do_v reside_v the_o instrument_n or_o tool_n from_o whence_o they_o draw_v their_o yarn_n which_o he_o call_v great_a long_a stone_n porphyry_n interpret_v to_o signify_v the_o bone_n of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v hard_o like_a unto_o stone_n which_o uphold_v the_o flesh_n and_o unto_o which_o it_o be_v fasten_v and_o these_o purple_a colour_a garment_n be_v say_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o flesh_n which_o be_v weave_v and_o wrought_v out_o of_o blood_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o coat_n wherewith_o the_o soul_n clothes_n itself_o to_o this_o answer_n that_o in_o david_n that_o he_o be_v curious_o wrought_v or_o weave_v in_o the_o womb_n and_o then_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v express_o the_o same_o with_o those_o word_n of_o david_n i_o be_o fearful_o and_o wonderful_o make_v and_o marvellous_a be_v thy_o work_n and_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n say_v the_o same_o porphyry_n whether_o we_o look_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d at_o the_o rare_a fabric_n and_o composition_n of_o the_o body_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o at_o the_o no_o less_o strange_a conjunction_n of_o it_o with_o the_o soul_n neither_o be_v this_o the_o single_a conceit_n of_o porphyry_n
come_v to_o his_o house_n and_o table_n then_o that_o they_o may_v be_v tie_v fast_o to_o he_o with_o new_a cord_n of_o his_o love_n and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v make_v more_o impossible_a for_o they_o to_o unloose_v themselves_o from_o his_o service_n what_o be_v there_o more_o in_o the_o desire_n of_o a_o holy_a soul_n then_o to_o cease_v to_o be_v its_o own_o what_o great_a pleasure_n do_v it_o feel_v then_o in_o part_v with_o itself_o to_o what_o will_v it_o be_v more_o engage_v then_o to_o the_o please_a of_o he_o who_o it_o hearty_o love_v let_v i_o be_v bind_v hand_n and_o foot_n say_v such_o a_o soul_n that_o i_o may_v never_o stir_v from_o he_o let_v i_o seal_v to_o he_o a_o thousand_o deed_n to_o convey_v myself_o unto_o he_o if_o he_o will_v have_v i_o sign_n the_o covenant_n with_o my_o blood_n every_o vein_n in_o my_o body_n shall_v leap_v to_o do_v he_o that_o honour_n but_o rather_o let_v he_o come_v and_o seat_n himself_o in_o my_o heart_n and_o let_v he_o take_v my_o dear_a life-blood_n if_o it_o will_v do_v he_o any_o service_n i_o accept_v of_o a_o suffering-saviour_n i_o take_v he_o as_o he_o be_v all_o break_a and_o bloody_a if_o he_o will_v have_v i_o follow_v he_o with_o a_o cross_n upon_o my_o shoulder_n i_o refuse_v no_o condition_n behold_v o_o lord_n thy_o servant_n do_v with_o i_o as_o seem_v good_a in_o thy_o sight_n thus_o we_o be_v to_o address_v ourselves_o to_o this_o feast_n as_o will_v be_v better_o understand_v if_o we_o consider_v these_o five_o thing_n i._o if_o we_o look_v upon_o this_o action_n only_o under_o the_o general_a notion_n of_o a_o holy_a rite_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v as_o a_o act_n of_o his_o worship_n yet_o the_o very_a use_v of_o it_o be_v a_o acknowledgement_n of_o he_o and_o his_o religion_n and_o a_o engagement_n of_o ourselves_o unto_o he_o as_o our_o god_n he_o that_o be_v circumcise_v be_v bind_v to_o observe_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o so_o be_v he_o that_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n at_o his_o altar_n engage_v to_o own_o he_o that_o have_v appoint_v that_o worship_n just_o so_o the_o perform_v but_o of_o one_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v as_o a_o ceremony_n in_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n do_v tie_v we_o to_o observe_v the_o whole_a religion_n which_o he_o require_v who_o do_v appoint_v that_o rite_n and_o you_o may_v likewise_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o mutual_a action_n in_o this_o sacrament_n of_o god_n give_v something_o and_o our_o take_n it_o do_v express_v that_o we_o be_v fast_o bind_v in_o that_o covenant_n of_o which_o this_o action_n be_v a_o part_n so_o the_o give_v and_o take_v but_o of_o so_o small_a a_o thing_n as_o a_o straw_n do_v bind_v person_n firm_o to_o that_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v agree_v and_o which_o they_o conclude_v in_o that_o manner_n stipulation_n one_o of_o the_o strong_a word_n which_o we_o have_v to_o signify_v the_o confirmation_n of_o a_o bargain_n by_o be_v ancient_o make_v by_o no_o strong_a thing_n as_o the_o very_a word_n do_v import_v which_o carry_v a_o straw_n in_o its_o name_n and_o so_o any_o other_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n may_v be_v use_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n the_o giving_z and_o take_v of_o sixpence_n to_o strike_v up_o a_o contract_n do_v lay_v as_o fast_o hold_v of_o a_o man_n as_o ten_o thousand_o pound_n in_o hand_n much_o more_o then_o this_o solemn_a give_v and_o take_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v a_o piece_n of_o christ_n religion_n and_o he_o so_o represent_v by_o they_o do_v bind_v we_o as_o fast_o to_o he_o as_o if_o we_o shall_v repeat_v every_o word_n that_o he_o have_v say_v and_o profess_v our_o consent_n unto_o it_o we_o be_v suppose_v to_o know_v the_o term_n of_o that_o write_n that_o christ_n have_v leave_v we_o contain_v our_o duty_n and_o his_o promise_n and_o it_o be_v presume_v we_o be_v willing_a to_o enjoy_v those_o promise_n and_o so_o to_o perform_v those_o duty_n this_o action_n then_o do_v but_o more_o solemn_o conclude_v the_o agreement_n and_o we_o hereby_o stand_v engage_v as_o strong_o as_o if_o covenant_n have_v be_v draw_v between_o we_o and_o our_o hand_n and_o seal_n be_v affix_v to_o they_o ii_o but_o then_o if_o we_o consider_v this_o action_n as_o a_o come_n to_o god_n table_n and_o partake_v of_o his_o meat_n we_o shall_v present_o discern_v that_o thereby_o we_o prosess_v ourselves_o of_o his_o family_n and_o declare_v to_o all_o that_o we_o be_v his_o follower_n and_o retainer_n and_o that_o we_o own_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o crucify_a jesus_n i_o confess_v that_o come_n to_o christian_a assembly_n in_o the_o first_o time_n be_v a_o own_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o be_v very_o dangerous_a but_o this_o action_n which_o be_v in_o those_o assembly_n perform_v be_v a_o more_o express_a profession_n of_o their_o belief_n in_o he_o and_o friendship_n with_o he_o for_o the_o great_a stumbling-block_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v foolishness_n to_o the_o gentile_n to_o declare_v therefore_o this_o death_n and_o cross_n of_o he_o to_o eat_v of_o his_o dead_a body_n and_o drink_v of_o his_o blood_n be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v i_o believe_v in_o this_o suffering-saviour_n i_o be_o a_o christian_n and_o will_v live_v and_o die_v in_o this_o religion_n a_o stranger_n may_v come_v unto_o a_o man_n house_n but_o the_o friend_n only_o be_v they_o that_o sit_v with_o he_o at_o his_o board_n and_o he_o that_o be_v not_o true_a to_o he_o of_o who_o bread_n he_o eat_v be_v the_o worst_a and_o base_a of_o all_o enemy_n the_o psalmist_n can_v put_v no_o worse_o character_n upon_o a_o enemy_n than_o this_o 41.9_o psal_n 41.9_o that_o he_o who_o put_v forth_o his_o hand_n to_o eat_v of_o his_o bread_n have_v lift_v up_o his_o heel_n against_o he_o by_o come_v then_o to_o god_n table_n we_o profess_v ourselves_o his_o familiar_a friend_n in_o who_o he_o repose_v a_o trust_n and_o we_o can_v put_v no_o great_a scorn_n upon_o he_o then_o by_o be_v false_a to_o he_o that_o do_v admit_v we_o to_o such_o a_o nearness_n you_o may_v observe_v therefore_o in_o scripture_n these_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o eat_v of_o bread_n together_o be_v speak_v of_o as_o a_o token_n of_o friendship_n and_o agreement_n as_o these_o two_o place_n among_o other_o will_v satisfy_v you_o job_n 42.11_o jer._n 41.1_o bread_n be_v never_o want_v at_o any_o feast_n and_o so_o they_o express_v by_o it_o a_o friendly_a entertainment_n whence_o pythagoras_n give_v this_o lesson_n to_o his_o scholar_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o break_v bread_n i._n e._n ne_fw-la dirimas_fw-la amici_fw-la iam_fw-la never_o break_v friendship_n but_o let_v it_o remain_v inviolable_a and_o so_o likewise_o salt_n be_v never_o absent_a from_o any_o meal_n and_o place_v upon_o the_o table_n it_o have_v be_v use_v as_o a_o symbol_n of_o friendship_n and_o to_o have_v eat_v salt_n with_o a_o man_n at_o this_o day_n be_v proverbial_o as_o much_o as_o to_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o he_o which_o be_v a_o word_n as_o usual_a in_o ancient_a time_n among_o other_o people_n 3._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d aristot._fw-la l._n 8._o ethic._n cap._n 3._o according_a to_o that_o speech_n of_o aristotle_n we_o can_v know_v one_o another_o till_z according_a to_o the_o proverb_n we_o have_v eat_v a_o quantity_n of_o salt_n together_o the_o turk_n 1_o turk_n knolles_n in_o the_o life_n of_o mah●met_n 1_o at_o this_o day_n join_v both_o together_o and_o to_o say_v i_o have_v eat_v bread_n and_o salt_n with_o sueh_a a_o one_o be_v a_o expression_n of_o have_v good_a acquaintance_n with_o he_o all_o which_o i_o but_o brief_o touch_v upon_o to_o make_v it_o more_o sensible_a to_o we_o that_o this_o participation_n of_o god_n bread_n be_v a_o token_n that_o we_o be_v of_o his_o acquaintance_n and_o we_o do_v tell_v the_o world_n hereby_o that_o we_o profess_v all_o love_n and_o friendship_n to_o he_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o will_v have_v note_v be_v that_o covenant_n in_o scripture_n story_n be_v make_v by_o eat_v and_o drink_v together_o for_o which_o i_o need_v produce_v no_o other_o place_n but_o those_o in_o gen._n 26.30_o gen._n 31.44_o 46._o where_o isaac_n and_o abimelech_n jacob_n and_o laban_n conclude_v their_o compact_n with_o a_o feast_n but_o you_o may_v add_v if_o you_o please_v that_o in_o josh_n 9.14_o where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o people_n take_v of_o the_o victual_n of_o the_o gibeonite_n and_o ask_v not_o counsel_n at_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n i._n e._n they_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o they_o before_o they_o consult_v with_o the_o holy_a oracle_n
the_o blood_n he_o sprinkle_v on_o the_o altar_n which_o represent_v god_n and_o the_o other_o half_o he_o sprinkle_v on_o the_o people_n ver_fw-la 6_o 7_o 8._o as_o a_o token_n of_o the_o covenant_n between_o they_o but_o for_o complete_n of_o the_o compact_a the_o chief_a of_o the_o people_n go_v up_o near_o to_o god_n and_o see_v that_o bright_a appearance_n and_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v ver_fw-la 11._o which_o sure_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o their_o feast_n upon_o the_o peace-offering_n which_o have_v be_v sacrifice_v unto_o god_n whereby_o they_o profess_v to_o own_o that_o covenant_n he_o have_v give_v to_o they_o not_o long_o after_o this_o people_n make_v to_o themselves_o other_o god_n and_o offer_v not_o only_a burnt-offering_n but_o also_o peace-offering_n to_o they_o exod._n 32.6_o and_o then_o sit_v down_o to_o eat_v and_o driuk_n and_o rise_v up_o to_o play_v i._n e._n to_o be_v wanton_a and_o commit_v uncleanness_n with_o each_o other_o now_o that_o this_o be_v a_o associate_a of_o themselves_o with_o the_o egyptian_a god_n we_o may_v learn_v from_o the_o apostle_n who_o recite_v of_o this_o passage_n and_o speak_v of_o their_o idolatry_n make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o their_o sacrifice_v to_o these_o new_a god_n but_o only_o of_o this_o eat_n etc._n etc._n which_o do_v conclude_v the_o ceremony_n as_o if_o the_o idolatry_n do_v formal_o consist_v in_o this_o and_o that_o hereby_o they_o do_v devote_v themselves_o to_o that_o strange_a worship_n neither_o be_v you_o idolator_n say_v he_o 1_o cor._n 10.8_o as_o be_v some_o of_o they_o as_o it_o be_v write_v the_o people_n sit_v down_o to_o eat_v and_o to_o drink_v and_o rise_v up_o to_o play_v by_o which_o word_n you_o may_v see_v the_o apostle_n make_v account_v that_o this_o eat_n and_o drink_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v a_o renounce_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o their_o god_n and_o join_v of_o themselves_o to_o idol_n now_o because_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n as_o it_o seem_v of_o some_o of_o the_o corinthian_n still_o to_o feast_v in_o the_o idol_n temple_n and_o perhaps_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o venus_n famous_a in_o that_o city_n which_o make_v the_o apostle_n add_v those_o word_n ver_fw-la 8._o neither_o commit_v fornication_n as_o some_o etc._n etc._n he_o tell_v they_o that_o this_o be_v a_o plain_a forsake_v of_o christ_n and_o utter_o incompatible_a with_o his_o profession_n for_o the_o vouch_v of_o which_o assertion_n he_o remind_v they_o what_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v import_v viz._n a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d participation_n or_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n ver_fw-la 16_o 17._o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v it_o be_v a_o profession_n that_o we_o as_o one_o body_n partake_v of_o one_o bread_n do_v hold_v communion_n with_o christ_n and_o adhere_v unto_o he_o as_o our_o lord_n and_o head_n and_o that_o to_o his_o worship_n and_o service_n we_o do_v consecrate_v ourselves_o for_o just_a as_o israel_n by_o eat_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n partake_v of_o or_o have_v communion_n with_o the_o altar_n ver_fw-la 18._o i._n e._n profess_v to_o be_v of_o that_o religion_n and_o adhere_v to_o that_o way_n of_o worship_n so_o it_o be_v with_o christian_n when_o they_o eat_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o crucify_a saviour_n which_o be_v offer_v for_o we_o and_o therefore_o by_o a_o likeness_n of_o reason_n he_o conclude_v that_o to_o partake_v of_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n and_o eat_v of_o thing_n sacrifice_v to_o they_o be_v to_o profess_v to_o have_v communion_n with_o those_o impure_a spirit_n and_o thereby_o to_o desecrate_v themselves_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o at_o once_o to_o be_v devote_v to_o thing_n so_o quite_o contrary_a as_o christ_n and_o the_o devil_n ver_fw-la 20_o 21._o from_o all_o which_o discourse_n we_o may_v thus_o reason_n that_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v a_o feast_n upon_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o christ_n offer_v as_o the_o jewish_a feast_n be_v make_v with_o the_o flesh_n of_o those_o sacrifice_n which_o they_o offer_v to_o god_n for_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n ver_fw-la 16._o parallel_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n ver_fw-la 18._o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o rite_n whereby_o we_o solemn_o addict_v ourselves_o to_o the_o service_n and_o worship_n of_o christ_n and_o take_v upon_o ourselves_o strict_a engagement_n to_o be_v faithful_a in_o that_o covenant_n that_o be_v between_o we_o which_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v as_o israel_n join_v themselves_o to_o god_n by_o feast_v in_o his_o house_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n so_o we_o join_v ourselves_o to_o christ_n by_o feast_v in_o the_o place_n of_o his_o worship_n and_o at_o his_o table_n upon_o the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o our_o obligation_n to_o cleave_v unto_o he_o do_v as_o much_o excel_v all_o other_o tie_v in_o their_o sacredness_n strength_n and_o virtue_n as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n excel_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o beast_n or_o the_o eat_n and_o drink_v of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v beyond_o all_o participation_n of_o the_o meat_n of_o the_o ancient_a altar_n yea_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o we_o be_v the_o friend_n of_o god_n before_o we_o come_v hither_o and_o that_o we_o be_v not_o in_o any_o willing_a uncleanness_n else_o we_o shall_v be_v shut_v out_o from_o partake_v of_o this_o offering_n and_o therefore_o our_o approach_n to_o his_o table_n be_v but_o more_o strong_o to_o tie_v the_o knot_n and_o to_o bind_v we_o in_o deep_a promise_n to_o continue_v friendship_n with_o he_o if_o more_o can_v be_v say_v then_o this_o i_o may_v add_v that_o the_o eat_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n be_v a_o solemn_a oath_n that_o we_o will_v be_v true_a and_o loyal_a to_o he_o for_o even_o heathen_n themselves_o do_v use_v by_o sacrifice_n to_o bind_v themselves_o in_o oath_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v that_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v slay_v when_o they_o make_v a_o covenant_n hom._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hom._n and_o in_o regard_n of_o its_o relation_n to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v render_v the_o oath-sacrifice_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o cut_v this_o sacrifice_n in_o homer_n phrase_n be_v to_o make_v a_o covenant_n which_o it_o be_v likely_a may_v be_v take_v from_o the_o hebrew_n custom_n mention_v jer._n 34.18_o and_o to_o swear_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d upon_o the_o warm_a entrail_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v the_o great_a oath_n that_o can_v be_v make_v when_o we_o lay_v our_o hand_n therefore_o upon_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v sacrifice_v for_o we_o and_o much_o more_o when_o we_o eat_v of_o it_o we_o do_v solemn_o take_v our_o oath_n that_o we_o will_v be_v his_o faithful_a foederates_n and_o rather_o die_v then_o shrink_v from_o those_o duty_n to_o which_o we_o bound_v ourselves_o iv_o if_o there_o be_v any_o that_o look_v upon_o eat_v and_o drink_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o wine_n only_o as_o symbol_n of_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o matter_n draw_v to_o the_o same_o point_n for_o faith_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o comprehend_v in_o its_o signification_n all_o that_o god_n require_v so_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_n expound_v those_o word_n joh._n 6._o 54._o ver_fw-la 54._o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drinketh_z my_o blood_n have_v eternal_a life_n to_o signify_v thus_o much_o he_o that_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o my_o wisdom_n through_o my_o incarnation_n and_o sensible_a life_n among_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v for_o flesh_n and_o blood_n say_v basil_n he_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d caesar_n epist_n 141._o ad_fw-la caesar_n all_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o incarnation_n and_o conversation_n here_o in_o the_o flesh_n among_o we_o together_o with_o his_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v teach_v we_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n by_o which_o the_o soul_n be_v nourish_v and_o fit_v for_o the_o sight_n of_o celestial_a thing_n and_o therefore_o eat_v and_o drink_v of_o these_o must_v denote_v embrace_v of_o all_o christ_n so_o as_o to_o be_v conform_v to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o doctrine_n if_o then_o we_o take_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o supper_n represent_v to_o we_o to_o signify_v the_o same_o and_o eat_v and_o drink_v to_o be_v only_o believe_v yet_o you_o may_v easy_o see_v to_o how_o much_o we_o be_v engage_v if_o we_o do_v real_o believe_v but_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o i_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v here_o must_v comprehend_v more_o than_o it_o do_v in_o st._n john_n for_o
else_o we_o shall_v do_v nothing_o at_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o what_o we_o may_v do_v at_o any_o other_o time_n as_o well_o if_o it_o be_v only_o believe_v and_o mere_a spiritual_a eat_n that_o here_o be_v exercise_v than_o we_o may_v feed_v so_o without_o this_o food_n and_o when_o christ_n command_v so_o frequent_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o it_o will_v be_v no_o more_o sense_n then_o if_o he_o have_v say_v do_v this_o which_o yet_o you_o may_v do_v without_o do_v this_o this_o eat_n and_o drink_v therefore_o must_v be_v a_o profession_n of_o our_o faith_n a_o covenant_v solemn_o with_o god_n and_o a_o receive_n and_o give_v of_o those_o pledge_n of_o love_n which_o we_o can_v have_v any_o where_o else_o v._o and_o indeed_o the_o old_a christian_n do_v so_o sacred_o bind_v themselves_o hereby_o to_o their_o saviour_n that_o heathen_n be_v ready_a to_o suspect_v they_o of_o dangerous_a combination_n and_o such_o conspiracy_n as_o may_v prove_v mischievous_a to_o the_o commonwealth_n from_o which_o imputation_n while_o pliny_n do_v acquit_v they_o 97._o l._n 10._o epist._n 97._o he_o likewise_o instruct_v we_o for_o what_o end_n they_o meet_v together_o at_o this_o feast_n they_o assemble_v themselves_o say_v he_o in_o a_o letter_n to_o trajan_n the_o emperor_n before_o day_n break_v and_o sing_v a_o hymn_n to_o christ_n as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n and_o then_o they_o do_v sacramento_fw-la se_fw-la obstringere_fw-la bound_v themselves_o with_o a_o sacrament_n or_o oath_n not_o that_o they_o will_v do_v mischief_n to_o any_o but_o that_o they_o will_v not_o rob_v or_o steal_v nor_o commit_v adultery_n nor_o falsify_v their_o word_n nor_o deny_v their_o trust_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o after_o they_o have_v eat_v together_o they_o depart_v to_o their_o own_o home_n of_o more_o than_o this_o they_o protest_v to_o he_o he_o shall_v never_o find_v they_o guilty_a and_o this_o be_v the_o crime_n of_o christian_n in_o those_o first_o age_n to_o engage_v themselves_o to_o commit_v no_o crime_n which_o they_o bind_v themselves_o unto_o by_o this_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n the_o greek_a christian_n at_o this_o day_n graec._n christop_v angelus_n rit_n eccles_n graec._n when_o they_o take_v the_o bread_n or_o cup_n into_o their_o hand_n make_v this_o profession_n lord_n i_o will_v not_o give_v thou_o a_o kiss_n like_o judas_n but_o i_o do_v confess_v unto_o thou_o like_o the_o poor_a thief_n and_o beseech_v thou_o to_o remember_v i_o when_o thy_o kingdom_n come_v if_o we_o do_v touch_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o traitorous_a lip_n and_o embrace_v he_o with_o a_o false_a heart_n we_o stain_v our_o soul_n with_o the_o guilt_n of_o that_o blood_n which_o can_v only_o wash_v they_o from_o all_o their_o other_o sin_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v come_v unfeigned_o to_o bewail_v our_o neglect_n and_o to_o settle_v our_o former_a resolution_n of_o strict_a obedience_n it_o be_v grow_v even_o to_o a_o proverb_n as_o joseph_n accosta_n relate_v among_o the_o poor_a indian_n that_o have_v entertain_v the_o faith_n 6._o de_fw-fr procur_fw-fr ind._n sal._n l._n 6._o that_o qui_fw-la eucharistiam_fw-la semel_fw-la susceperit_fw-la nullum_fw-la amplius_fw-la crimen_fw-la debet_fw-la committere_fw-la he_o must_v never_o be_v guilty_a more_o of_o any_o crime_n who_o have_v once_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n and_o if_o they_o chance_v to_o commit_v any_o they_o bewail_v it_o with_o such_o a_o sorrow_n and_o compunction_n that_o he_o say_v he_o have_v not_o find_v such_o faith_n no_o not_o in_o israel_n but_o it_o will_v be_v very_o sad_a if_o we_o shall_v be_v send_v to_o school_v as_o far_o as_o india_n there_o be_v i_o make_v no_o doubt_n many_o pious_a soul_n among_o ourselves_o that_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o bless_a opportunity_n to_o knit_v their_o heart_n in_o great_a love_n to_o god_n and_o that_o be_v more_o afflict_v for_o a_o evil_a thought_n after_o such_o engagement_n than_o other_o be_v for_o a_o base_a and_o unworthy_a action_n whensoever_o therefore_o we_o come_v to_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o christ_n death_n in_o this_o manner_n we_o must_v remember_v with_o ourselves_o that_o we_o be_v assemble_v for_o to_o renew_v our_o baptismal_a vow_n and_o league_n and_o in_o the_o devout_a manner_n to_o addict_v ourselves_o to_o a_o more_o constant_a love_n and_o service_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n we_o must_v look_v upon_o this_o feast_n to_o which_o we_o be_v admit_v as_o a_o disclaim_n of_o all_o enmity_n to_o he_o and_o a_o profession_n of_o our_o continue_v a_o hearty_a friendship_n so_o as_o never_o to_o do_v any_o hostile_a act_n against_o he_o and_o thence_o indeed_o it_o be_v call_v a_o sacrament_n according_a to_o tertullian_n and_o other_o with_o he_o because_o we_o here_o take_v a_o oath_n to_o continue_v christ_n faithful_a soldier_n and_o never_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n against_o his_o crown_n and_o dignity_n as_o long_o as_o there_o remain_v any_o breath_n in_o our_o body_n we_o do_v repeat_v our_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o swear_v fealty_n again_o to_o he_o or_o as_o we_o ordinary_o speak_v we_o take_v the_o sacrament_n upon_o it_o that_o we_o will_v be_v christ_n faithful_a servant_n and_o soldier_n against_o the_o devil_n world_n and_o flesh_n and_o never_o fly_v from_o his_o service_n every_o act_n of_o sin_n then_o after_o such_o promise_n be_v not_o only_a treason_n but_o perjury_n not_o only_o the_o break_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o of_o our_o oath_n yea_o not_o only_o the_o violation_n of_o a_o simple_a oath_n but_o of_o oath_n upon_o oath_n which_o we_o ought_v more_o to_o dread_n than_o we_o do_v to_o break_v our_o bone_n we_o esteem_v it_o a_o impiety_n of_o a_o high_a nature_n for_o a_o minister_n to_o give_v a_o cup_n of_o poison_n into_o a_o man_n hand_n instead_o of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o we_o do_v deserve_o abhor_v that_o priest_n that_o poison_a pope_n victor_n the_o 3d._o mortis_fw-la venenum_fw-la sub_fw-la specie_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la dedit_fw-la vertens_fw-la calicem_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la in_o calicem_fw-la mortis_fw-la with_o the_o sacrament_n and_o he_o that_o poison_a henry_n the_o 7_o emp._n turn_v as_o nauclerus_fw-la his_o phrase_n be_v the_o cup_n of_o life_n into_o the_o cup_n of_o death_n but_o while_o our_o heart_n swell_v in_o indignation_n at_o such_o a_o crime_n let_v we_o consider_v with_o ourselves_o what_o a_o treasonable_a act_n it_o be_v to_o poison_v our_o soul_n with_o our_o own_o hand_n and_o by_o a_o base_a treachery_n to_o god_n to_o swallow_v down_o curse_n and_o woe_n into_o ourselves_o better_a be_v it_o for_o we_o to_o be_v choke_v with_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n or_o to_o feel_v the_o venom_n of_o asp_n boil_v in_o our_o vein_n after_o the_o holy_a cup_n then_o to_o take_v a_o oath_n which_o we_o take_v small_a care_n to_o keep_v then_o to_o go_v on_o in_o a_o course_n of_o sin_n after_o such_o sacred_a profession_n of_o our_o duty_n and_o service_n unto_o christ_n we_o be_v amaze_v to_o hear_v that_o man_n can_v touch_v the_o gospel_n before_o a_o magistrate_n and_o kiss_v the_o book_n or_o lift_v up_o their_o hand_n to_o heaven_n and_o yet_o make_v good_a never_o a_o word_n that_o they_o swear_v we_o be_v apt_a to_o think_v that_o either_o these_o man_n have_v no_o soul_n or_o that_o they_o do_v not_o value_v they_o at_o the_o price_n of_o a_o rot_a nut_n o_o let_v our_o very_a flesh_n then_o tremble_v to_o think_v that_o we_o shall_v lay_v our_o hand_n upon_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o take_v it_o into_o our_o very_a mouth_n and_o solemn_o swear_v unto_o he_o and_o yet_o not_o be_v faithful_a in_o his_o covenant_n nor_o hearty_o endeavour_v to_o perform_v our_o promise_n unto_o he_o for_o there_o be_v no_o forswear_a person_n have_v such_o a_o black_a soul_n as_o he_o who_o soul_n be_v foul_v even_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n himself_o which_o wash_v the_o soul_n of_o other_o the_o world_n can_v but_o shrink_v at_o the_o thought_n of_o that_o fearful_a act_n of_o one_o of_o the_o pope_n who_o make_v a_o league_n with_o caesar_n and_o the_o french_a king_n divide_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n into_o three_o part_n with_o this_o say_n scarce_o tolerable_a as_o the_o holy_a trinity_n be_v but_o one_o god_n so_o let_v the_o union_n endure_v between_o we_o three_o confederate_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o break_v it_o and_o start_v from_o the_o agreement_n far_o be_v it_o from_o we_o then_o after_o this_o action_n wherein_o we_o join_v our_o self_n to_o god_n and_o unite_v our_o heart_n to_o fear_v his_o name_n and_o become_v as_o it_o be_v one_o with_o he_o to_o rescind_v our_o covenant_n or_o stand_v again_o at_o term_n of_o defiance_n but_o let_v we_o have_v a_o care_n
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d change_n of_o one_o thing_n into_o another_o and_o nyssen_n by_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d translation_n or_o theophylact_v by_o his_o great_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d transelementation_n for_o that_o this_o last_o word_n do_v not_o amount_v to_o a_o change_n of_o one_o substance_n into_o another_o we_o may_v be_v clear_o satisfy_v from_o himself_o who_o as_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o bread_n be_v transelementate_v into_o christ_n body_n so_o likewise_o affirm_v that_o we_o be_v transelementate_v into_o christ_n now_o as_o by_o this_o late_a expression_n he_o can_v intend_v no_o more_o but_o our_o mystical_a incorporation_n with_o he_o so_o by_o the_o former_a nothing_o else_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v but_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o bread_n to_o no_o other_o use_n so_o that_o in_o effect_v it_o be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o short_a he_o that_o have_v the_o picture_n of_o a_o king_n in_o his_o chamber_n have_v but_o a_o bare_a sign_n which_o may_v make_v he_o think_v of_o he_o and_o no_o more_o but_o he_o that_o have_v the_o king_n great_a seal_n which_o confirm_v he_o in_o the_o possession_n of_o all_o the_o land_n he_o enjoy_v have_v his_o picture_n and_o something_o else_o that_o come_v along_o with_o it_o which_o instate_v he_o in_o a_o real_a good_a and_o though_o the_o wax_v affix_v to_o the_o writing_n be_v the_o same_o for_o substance_n with_o that_o which_o be_v in_o a_o man_n shop_n yet_o for_o virtue_n as_o it_o be_v make_v use_n of_o it_o be_v much_o different_a and_o far_o better_a than_o all_o the_o wax_n that_o a_o whole_a county_n can_v afford_v even_o so_o it_o be_v in_o this_o case_n before_o we_o bread_n break_v and_o wine_n pour_v out_o be_v but_o bare_a sign_n of_o christ_n suffering_n if_o we_o consider_v they_o naked_o in_o themselves_o but_o if_o we_o look_v on_o they_o as_o a_o foederal_a rite_n and_o as_o they_o be_v give_v to_o we_o and_o eat_v and_o drunken_a by_o we_o in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n so_o they_o be_v seal_n and_o further_a confirmation_n of_o god_n great_a love_n towards_o we_o and_o though_o they_o be_v still_o the_o same_o for_o substance_n with_o the_o most_o common_a bread_n and_o wine_n which_o we_o use_v at_o our_o meal_n yet_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o use_n to_o which_o now_o they_o be_v convert_v they_o become_v sacred_a and_o of_o great_a virtue_n to_o convey_v unto_o we_o the_o thing_n express_v in_o the_o covenant_n which_o be_v of_o more_o worth_n than_o all_o the_o world_n ii_o it_o be_v further_a manifest_a that_o we_o be_v hereby_o confirm_v in_o the_o state_n of_o pardon_n and_o forgiveness_n because_o we_o do_v here_o put_v forth_o the_o most_o solemn_a act_n of_o charity_n and_o forgiveness_n to_o all_o our_o enemy_n for_o it_o be_v a_o feast_n of_o love_n as_o you_o shall_v see_v afterward_o and_o this_o be_v the_o very_a condition_n upon_o which_o our_o forgiveness_n depend_v that_o we_o forgive_v other_o 15._o matt._n 6.14_o 15._o and_o therefore_o when_o we_o here_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n and_o put_v away_o all_o enmity_n out_o of_o our_o heart_n never_o to_o return_v any_o more_o god_n be_v engage_v to_o express_v himself_o to_o we_o as_o a_o friend_n and_o to_o let_v fall_v all_o difference_n that_o have_v be_v between_o he_o and_o we_o i_o know_v that_o we_o be_v never_o to_o harbour_v any_o hatred_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o that_o we_o can_v pray_v successful_o at_o any_o time_n unless_o we_o lift_v up_o pure_a hand_n without_o wrath_n and_o i_o likewise_o wish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o love_n be_v most_o frequent_o and_o severe_o press_v and_o practise_v but_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o time_n when_o we_o do_v more_o narrow_o search_v ourselves_o to_o find_v out_o the_o relic_n of_o that_o sour_a leaven_n and_o when_o we_o be_v more_o powerful_o move_v to_o extinguish_v even_o the_o least_o spark_n or_o seed_n of_o fire_n that_o be_v in_o our_o soul_n then_o when_o we_o consider_v christ_n death_n and_o remember_v how_o he_o pray_v for_o his_o enemy_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o therefore_o i_o conceive_v that_o upon_o this_o account_n the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n may_v be_v a_o mean_n of_o assure_v our_o pardon_n and_o strengthen_v of_o our_o title_n to_o forgiveness_n but_o notwithstanding_o i_o consider_v with_o myself_o that_o this_o duty_n of_o pardon_v other_o be_v not_o so_o peculiar_a to_o this_o sacrament_n but_o that_o it_o may_v and_o must_v be_v do_v as_o i_o say_v at_o all_o other_o time_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n i_o shall_v pass_v it_o by_o and_o proceed_v to_o that_o which_o i_o will_v have_v most_o of_o all_o observe_v for_o the_o understanding_n of_o this_o part_n of_o my_o discourse_n and_o that_o be_v this_o iii_o this_o eat_n and_o drink_v be_v a_o feast_n upon_o a_o sin-offering_n and_o therefore_o be_v a_o great_a pledge_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o you_o may_v conceive_v of_o this_o aright_o it_o must_v be_v remember_v that_o though_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n use_v to_o feast_v upon_o their_o peace-offering_n which_o be_v make_v at_o the_o altar_n as_o have_v be_v say_v already_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o admit_v to_o eat_v of_o any_o else_o the_o whole_a burnt-offering_n indeed_o have_v peace-offering_n attend_v always_o upon_o they_o and_o so_o they_o do_v partake_v of_o the_o altar_n when_o they_o be_v offer_v by_o eat_v of_o the_o latter_a but_o of_o the_o former_a none_n taste_v but_o god_n himself_o the_o offering_n for_o sin_n as_o you_o have_v see_v be_v the_o portion_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o people_n be_v exclude_v from_o they_o unless_o you_o will_v say_v that_o they_o eat_v by_o they_o as_o their_o substitute_n and_o mediator_n but_o now_o you_o must_v further_o note_v that_o though_o the_o priest_n be_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o sin-offering_n for_o particular_a person_n yet_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n make_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n who_o blood_n be_v carry_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n the_o priest_n themselves_o may_v not_o eat_v and_o so_o consequent_o nor_o the_o people_n by_o they_o but_o they_o be_v to_o burn_v its_o flesh_n without_o the_o camp_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o day_n of_o general_a atonement_n leu._n 16.27_o or_o at_o any_o other_o time_n when_o the_o whole_a congregation_n have_v commit_v a_o sin_n through_o ignorance_n leu._n 4.13.21_o leu._n 6.30_o that_o a_o offering_n be_v to_o be_v make_v for_o they_o they_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o have_v the_o least_o share_n of_o it_o now_o christ_n make_v his_o soul_n a_o offering_n for_o sin_n 53.10_o isa_n 53.10_o and_o such_o a_o offering_n that_o with_o his_o blood_n he_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n and_o suffer_v without_o the_o camp_n and_o therefore_o be_v most_o illustrious_o set_v forth_o by_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v for_o the_o whole_a congregation_n according_a then_o to_o the_o law_n none_o be_v to_o feed_v upon_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o yet_o our_o lord_n have_v indulge_v unto_o we_o the_o privilege_n of_o feast_v upon_o this_o great_a sacrifice_n of_o propitiation_n according_a as_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n do_v intimate_v when_o our_o saviour_n say_v 14.24_o mark_v 14.24_o this_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o i._n e._n which_o be_v like_a to_o the_o sacrifice_n on_o the_o great_a day_n of_o atonement_n which_o be_v not_o make_v for_o one_o person_n but_o for_o the_o whole_a congregation_n and_o of_o this_o i_o give_v you_o leave_v to_o drink_v this_o be_v a_o favour_n never_o grant_v to_o the_o world_n before_o and_o beside_o what_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n speak_v it_o be_v remarkable_a what_o be_v deliver_v by_o porphyry_n as_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o the_o heathen_a divine_n in_o the_o world_n 〈◊〉_d l._n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o divine_v consent_n in_o this_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o touch_v so_o much_o as_o a_o bit_n of_o those_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v for_o the_o avert_n of_o wrath_n though_o it_o be_v never_o lawful_a you_o know_v to_o eat_v the_o blood_n of_o any_o sacrifice_n whether_o peace-offering_a or_o other_o but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v pour_v out_o at_o the_o altar_n and_o though_o the_o flesh_n of_o those_o that_o be_v offer_v for_o sin_n by_o the_o law_n of_o all_o people_n be_v not_o to_o be_v taste_v yet_o we_o may_v drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n yea_o of_o this_o great_a sacrifice_n for_o all_o the_o people_n and_o we_o may_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o it_o by_o the_o command_n of_o
our_o saviour_n this_o thing_n sure_o must_v contain_v in_o it_o some_o great_a mystery_n for_o the_o apostle_n seem_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o when_o he_o say_v heb._n 13.10_o we_o have_v a_o altar_n whereof_o they_o have_v no_o right_a to_o eat_v which_o serve_v the_o tabernacle_n etc._n etc._n altar_n in_o this_o place_n be_v by_o a_o metonymy_n put_v for_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n discourse_n in_o that_o and_o the_o follow_a verse_n be_v this_o go_v out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n and_o never_o meddle_v with_o the_o jewish_a religion_n though_o you_o may_v endure_v persecution_n by_o they_o as_o christ_n do_v for_o you_o enjoy_v this_o special_a privilege_n of_o eat_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v make_v for_o sin_n without_o the_o gate_n and_o who_o blood_n be_v carry_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n a_o thing_n which_o no_o jew_n can_v ever_o have_v any_o right_n unto_o in_o those_o sinne-offering_n that_o be_v make_v among_o they_o the_o true_a intent_n of_o this_o grant_n which_o christ_n have_v make_v we_o contrary_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o all_o the_o world_n may_v be_v to_o show_v our_o union_n with_o his_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o it_o be_v as_o true_o impute_v to_o we_o as_o if_o we_o can_v have_v make_v satisfaction_n ourselves_o and_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v act._n 13.39_o it_o show_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o he_o from_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o can_v not_o be_v justify_v from_o by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n this_o difference_n therefore_o be_v remarkable_a between_o the_o legal_a sacrifice_n and_o this_o representation_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n in_o they_o be_v make_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d heb._n 10.3_o a_o commemoration_n of_o sin_n every_o year_n they_o be_v a_o plain_a confession_n of_o sin_n that_o it_o remain_v still_o in_o force_n and_o that_o they_o can_v not_o take_v it_o away_o else_o they_o need_v not_o to_o have_v be_v repeat_v and_o so_o st._n chrysostome_n say_v very_o elegant_o hebr._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hom._n 17._o in_o hebr._n the_o legal_a saerifice_n be_v rather_o accusation_n than_o expiation_n a_o confession_n of_o their_o weakness_n rather_o than_o a_o profession_n of_o their_o strength_n because_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v they_o be_v a_o remembrance_n that_o sin_n still_o be_v in_o power_n but_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o which_o we_o partake_v be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o commemoration_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n a_o remembrance_n that_o it_o be_v quite_o take_v away_o and_o have_v quite_o lose_v all_o its_o strength_n and_o so_o see_v christ_n have_v make_v a_o perfect_a satisfaction_n though_o they_o may_v not_o eat_v yet_o we_o may_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o expiation_n they_o may_v not_o because_o sin_n be_v acknowledge_v thereby_o to_o remain_v we_o may_v because_o by_o christ_n offering_n to_o make_v expiation_n it_o be_v abolish_v and_o utter_o destroy_v so_o as_o to_o have_v no_o force_n to_o oblige_v we_o unto_o punishment_n and_o if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o be_v deliver_v in_o pirke_n eliezer_n and_o other_o book_n 29._o cap._n 29._o that_o abraham_n be_v circumcise_v on_o the_o day_n of_o expiation_n gen._n 17.26_o and_o that_o this_o day_n be_v a_o remembrance_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o circumcision_n than_o it_o be_v still_o more_o clear_a that_o only_o by_o the_o new_a covenant_n forgiveness_n can_v be_v obtain_v for_o the_o great_a of_o their_o sacrifice_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n make_v a_o remembrance_n of_o sin_n and_o not_o of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o they_o to_o shut_v up_o this_o then_o you_o may_v thus_o take_v a_o very_a brief_a sum_n of_o it_o before_o the_o flood_n they_o only_o offer_v holocau_v or_o whole_a burn_a offering_n for_o then_o they_o eat_v no_o flesh_n after_o the_o flood_n they_o sacrifice_v peace-offering_n also_o for_o mercy_n which_o they_o receive_v and_o these_o they_o all_o eat_v of_o but_o we_o read_v of_o no_o sin-offering_a till_o the_o law_n be_v give_v and_o those_o the_o priest_n only_o eat_v of_o but_o not_o of_o all_o till_o the_o gospel_n come_v never_o do_v any_o eat_v of_o a_o sin-offering_n that_o be_v carry_v within_o the_o vail_n to_o reconcile_v withal_o but_o now_o both_o priest_n and_o people_n partake_v of_o it_o 1.6_o rev._n 1.6_o we_o be_v all_o make_v priest_n unto_o god_n in_o this_o regard_n that_o as_o the_o priest_n of_o old_a have_v the_o favour_n to_o eat_v of_o the_o body_n and_o so_o have_v all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n now_o by_o communicate_v of_o sin-offering_n blood_n of_o christ_n who_o offer_v up_o himself_o unto_o god_n for_o we_o and_o it_o must_v be_v add_v 2.9_o 1_o pet._n 2.9_o that_o we_o be_v more_o than_o priest_n even_o king_n and_o priest_n or_o a_o royal_a priesthood_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o deny_v unto_o we_o and_o we_o have_v power_n to_o eat_v of_o that_o which_o the_o highpriest_n himself_o may_v not_o taste_v of_o which_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o general_a atonement_n who_o flesh_n be_v burn_v without_o the_o camp_n and_o if_o we_o well_o consider_v we_o shall_v see_v that_o they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o feast_v upon_o it_o see_v the_o guilt_n do_v still_o remain_v which_o their_o sacrifice_n can_v not_o remove_v but_o that_o we_o have_v because_o our_o offering_n for_o sin_n have_v make_v a_o complete_a expiation_n and_o give_v we_o the_o great_a ground_n of_o joy_n and_o peace_n now_o by_o our_o eat_n of_o it_o we_o must_v needs_o be_v conclude_v to_o partake_v even_o of_o that_o altar_n and_o so_o to_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n to_o draw_v then_o the_o chapter_n to_o a_o conclusion_n if_o we_o take_v a_o review_n of_o what_o have_v be_v say_v in_o this_o and_o the_o forego_n discourse_n we_o may_v be_v sufficient_o inform_v what_o divine_n mean_v when_o they_o say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n we_o set_v our_o seal_n to_o it_o as_o we_o give_v up_o ourselves_o to_o god_n and_o god_n set_v his_o seal_n again_o to_o it_o by_o deliver_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n to_o we_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n there_o represent_v and_o communicate_v to_o we_o do_v seal_v to_o we_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o all_o blessing_n if_o we_o do_v hearty_o set_v our_o seal_n to_o the_o counterpart_n and_o by_o take_v and_o receive_v christ_n under_o these_o sign_n promise_n and_o engage_v most_o firm_o to_o lead_v a_o life_n according_a to_o his_o will_n reveal_v to_o we_o god_n seal_v when_o he_o give_v and_o we_o seal_v when_o we_o receive_v if_o we_o mean_v as_o real_o as_o he_o do_v than_o we_o have_v a_o right_n to_o all_o thing_n specify_v in_o the_o covenant_n by_o which_o you_o may_v discern_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o seal_n that_o we_o be_v pardon_v and_o our_o sin_n be_v forgive_v but_o that_o god_n remain_v firm_a in_o his_o purpose_n of_o grace_n and_o if_o we_o do_v so_o too_o in_o our_o purpose_n of_o obedience_n we_o may_v thence_o conclude_v that_o we_o be_v pardon_v our_o assurance_n then_o of_o our_o particular_a pardon_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o result_v from_o another_o act_n of_o we_o which_o be_v a_o serious_a compare_v of_o our_o seal_n and_o god_n together_o or_o a_o reflect_v upon_o what_o we_o and_o god_n have_v do_v when_o we_o know_v our_o own_o sincerity_n and_o heartiness_n in_o our_o profession_n as_o we_o be_v assure_v of_o god_n reality_n and_o truth_n in_o what_o he_o promise_v than_o we_o may_v conclude_v well_o of_o ourselves_o and_o rest_v assure_v of_o a_o pardon_n yet_o our_o pardon_n be_v not_o seal_v so_o certain_o as_o god_n seal_v the_o covenant_n because_o the_o certainty_n that_o we_o have_v in_o ourselves_o of_o our_o be_v pardon_v rely_v upon_o a_o thing_n far_o more_o dubious_a than_o the_o certainty_n we_o have_v that_o god_n will_v pardon_v our_o judgement_n concern_v ourselves_o be_v only_o a_o humane_a act_n ground_v upon_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o ourselves_o whereas_o our_o belief_n of_o the_o promise_n be_v a_o divine_a faith_n ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o which_o he_o set_v his_o seal_n and_o therefore_o the_o conclusion_n we_o make_v which_o still_o follow_v the_o weak_a part_n or_o the_o assurance_n we_o attain_v of_o our_o be_v pardon_v can_v be_v only_o a_o act_n of_o humane_a faith_n it_o can_v never_o be_v so_o sure_a as_o one_o of_o the_o premise_n be_v unless_o we_o can_v be_v as_o sure_o that_o we_o say_v true_a of_o ourselves_o as_o that_o god_n say_v true_a of_o himself_o if_o it_o be_v as_o certain_a that_o i_o believe_v as_o it_o be_v that_o god_n will_v pardon_v all_o that_o believe_v than_o the_o
and_o attend_v upon_o this_o which_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o they_o yea_o by_o this_o faith_n and_o love_v our_o heart_n be_v more_o enlarge_v the_o vessel_n of_o our_o soul_n be_v render_v more_o capable_a and_o the_o temple_n of_o christ_n be_v much_o more_o amplify_v to_o receive_v more_o of_o god_n presence_n and_o that_o be_v the_o next_o thing_n iii_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v here_o confer_v on_o we_o in_o large_a measure_n which_o be_v the_o very_a bond_n and_o ligament_n that_o tie_v we_o to_o he_o for_o this_o union_n be_v not_o only_o such_o a_o moral_a union_n as_o be_v between_o husband_n and_o wife_n which_o be_v make_v by_o love_n or_o between_o king_n and_o subject_n which_o be_v make_v by_o law_n but_o such_o a_o natural_a union_n as_o be_v between_o head_n and_o member_n the_o vine_n and_o branch_n which_o be_v make_v by_o one_o spirit_n or_o life_n dwell_v in_o the_o whole_a for_o the_o understanding_n of_o this_o which_o i_o shall_v insist_v on_o long_o then_o ther_v you_o must_v consider_v these_o thing_n 1._o that_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o many_o thing_n in_o scripture_n or_o in_o st._n chrysostom_n phrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o unite_v we_o to_o himself_o after_o many_o pattern_n i_o think_v there_o be_v not_o a_o better_a collection_n of_o they_o than_o we_o meet_v with_o in_o he_o he_o be_v the_o head_n faith_n he_o we_o be_v the_o body_n cor._n hom._n 8._o in_o 1._o ad_fw-la cor._n he_o be_v the_o foundation_n we_o be_v the_o build_n he_o be_v the_o vine_n we_o be_v the_o branch_n he_o be_v the_o bridegroom_n we_o be_v the_o bride_n he_o be_v the_o shepherd_n we_o be_v the_o sheep_n he_o be_v the_o way_n we_o be_v the_o traveller_n we_o be_v the_o temple_n and_o he_o be_v the_o inhabitant_n he_o be_v the_o first-born_a we_o his_o brethren_n he_o be_v the_o heir_n we_o the_o coheir_n he_o be_v the_o life_n we_o be_v the_o live_n etc._n etc._n all_o these_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v show_v a_o union_n and_o such_o a_o one_o that_o will_v not_o admit_v the_o least_o thing_n to_o come_v between_o they_o 2._o observe_v that_o the_o high_a and_o close_a union_n be_v that_o which_o be_v make_v by_o one_o spirit_n and_o life_n move_v in_o the_o whole_a and_o therefore_o i_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o scripture_n delight_v most_o frequent_o to_o use_v the_o two_o first_o example_n of_o a_o body_n and_o a_o building_n and_o those_o that_o be_v near_a to_o these_o now_o because_o a_o building_n have_v no_o life_n but_o yet_o by_o its_o firmness_n and_o strength_n do_v notable_o set_v forth_o the_o firmness_n of_o the_o union_n that_o be_v between_o christ_n and_o his_o people_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n put_v both_o these_o together_o and_o call_v christ_n a_o live_a stone_n and_o those_o that_o come_v to_o he_o lively_a or_o live_a stone_n which_o be_v build_v up_o a_o spiritual_a house_n or_o temple_n where_o they_o offer_v spiritual_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n 1_o pet._n 2.4_o 5._o that_o union_n therefore_o be_v most_o perfect_a which_o be_v make_v by_o life_n though_o other_o may_v be_v of_o great_a est_fw-fr strength_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n apply_v it_o even_o to_o thing_n without_o life_n that_o he_o may_v the_o better_o show_v that_o the_o union_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o member_n by_o one_o life_n be_v in_o strength_n more_o like_o the_o solidness_n of_o a_o temple_n then_o any_o other_o thing_n who_o part_n be_v so_o cement_v as_o that_o they_o will_v last_v as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n 3._o we_o must_v observe_v that_o thing_n at_o the_o great_a distance_n may_v be_v unite_v by_o one_o spirit_n of_o life_n actuate_a they_o both_o and_o so_o may_v christ_n and_o we_o though_o we_o enjoy_v not_o his_o bodily_a presence_n it_o be_v true_o note_v by_o a_o most_o rev._n usher_n a._n usher_n person_n that_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o the_o union_n that_o be_v make_v between_o the_o part_n of_o our_o body_n consist_v not_o in_o their_o continuity_n and_o touch_v of_o each_o other_o but_o in_o the_o animation_n of_o they_o by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n which_o tie_v they_o all_o together_o if_o the_o spirit_n withdraw_v itself_o from_o any_o part_n so_o that_o it_o be_v mortify_v it_o present_o remain_v as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o of_o the_o body_n though_o its_o part_n still_o touch_v the_o next_o member_n to_o it_o and_o so_o we_o see_v in_o tree_n if_o any_o branch_n be_v deprive_v of_o the_o vegetative_a spirit_n it_o drop_v from_o the_o tree_n as_o now_o no_o more_o belong_v to_o it_o on_o the_o other_o side_n you_o see_v the_o toe_n have_v a_o union_n with_o the_o head_n though_o at_o a_o distance_n not_o only_o by_o the_o intervening_a of_o many_o part_n that_o reach_v from_o they_o unto_o it_o but_o by_o the_o soul_n that_o be_v present_a in_o the_o far_a member_n and_o give_v the_o head_n as_o speedy_a notice_n of_o what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o remote_a part_n as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o next_o door_n to_o the_o brain_n and_o this_o it_o do_v without_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o neighbour_a part_n that_o shall_v whisper_v the_o grief_n of_o the_o toe_n from_o one_o to_o the_o other_o till_o the_o head_n hear_v but_o without_o the_o least_o trouble_n to_o any_o of_o they_o which_o do_v not_o feel_v their_o pain_n if_o you_o shall_v suppose_v therefore_o our_o body_n to_o be_v as_o high_a as_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o head_n of_o it_o to_o touch_v the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o the_o foot_n to_o stand_v upon_o his_o footstool_n the_o earth_n no_o soon_o can_v the_o head_n think_v of_o move_v a_o toe_n but_o present_o it_o will_v stir_v and_o no_o soon_o can_v any_o pain_n befall_v the_o most_o distant_a part_n than_o the_o head_n will_v be_v advise_v of_o it_o which_o must_v be_v by_o virtue_n of_o that_o spirit_n which_o be_v conceive_v alike_o present_a to_o every_o part_n and_o therefore_o that_o must_v be_v take_v likewise_o to_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o that_o union_n which_o be_v among_o they_o all_o just_o so_o may_v you_o apprehend_v the_o union_n to_o be_v between_o christ_n our_o head_n and_o we_o his_o member_n although_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n he_o be_v in_o the_o heaven_n which_o must_v receive_v he_o until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n act._n 3.21_o yet_o he_o be_v here_o with_o we_o always_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n mat._n 28.20_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n work_v in_o we_o by_o this_o he_o be_v sensible_a of_o all_o our_o need_n and_o by_o the_o vital_a influence_n of_o it_o in_o every_o part_n he_o join_v the_o whole_a body_n fit_o together_o so_o that_o he_o and_o it_o make_v one_o christ_n according_a as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o cor._n 12.12_o as_o the_o body_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o tha●_n one_o body_n be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n so_o also_o be_v christ_n and_o that_o this_o union_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n which_o every_o true_a christian_a have_v dwell_v in_o he_o cor._n 6._o 7._o rom._n 8.9_o the_o next_o verse_n ver_fw-la 13._o will_v tell_v you_o we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n by_o one_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n which_o will_v lead_v i_o to_o the_o four_o thing_n for_o which_o all_o this_o be_v say_v 4._o we_o receive_v of_o this_o spirit_n when_o we_o worthy_o communicate_v at_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n according_a as_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o 13_o verse_n be_v think_v to_o say_v we_o have_v be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n i._n e._n we_o have_v all_o reason_n to_o agree_v well_o together_o for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o spirit_n that_o animate_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o we_o which_o we_o receive_v at_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n when_o we_o drink_v the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n one_o christian_n do_v not_o drink_v out_o of_o the_o same_o cup_n a_o spirit_n of_o peace_n and_o another_o christian_a a_o spirit_n of_o contention_n but_o as_o chrysostome_n expound_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n we_o all_o come_v to_o be_v initiate_v in_o the_o same_o secret_n we_o all_o enjoy_v the_o same_o table_n and_o though_o he_o do_v not_o say_v as_o it_o follow_v in_o he_o that_o we_o eat_v the_o same_o body_n and_o drink_v the_o same_o blood_n yet_o since_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o say_v both_o for_o in_o both_o we_o be_v water_v with_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n even_o as_o tree_n say_v he_o be_v water_v out_o of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o fountain_n theoph●l_v v._o
and_o there_o embrace_v together_o do_v pass_v as_o it_o be_v into_o each_o other_o body_n as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o jonathan_n 18.1_o 1_o sam._n 18.1_o so_o it_o may_v be_v affirm_v of_o they_o their_o soul_n be_v knit_v to_o the_o soul_n of_o their_o brethren_n and_o they_o love_v they_o as_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o therefore_o alexander_n the_o false_a prophet_n pseudomant_n lucian_n in_o pseudomant_n in_o imitation_n i_o make_v no_o question_n of_o these_o holy_a brethren_n do_v entertain_v all_o his_o follower_n with_o a_o kiss_n and_o those_o that_o be_v admit_v to_o a_o near_a communication_n with_o he_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o within_o the_o kiss_n there_o be_v several_a place_n i_o observe_v in_o holy_a writ_n where_o this_o kind_n of_o salutation_n be_v join_v with_o weep_v gen._n 29.11_o gen._n 33.4_o gen._n 45.15_o whereby_o the_o scripture_n express_v such_o a_o joy_n at_o each_o other_o sight_n that_o it_o stop_v all_o passage_n for_o the_o present_a but_o the_o eye_n and_o tear_n tell_v that_o which_o the_o mouth_n can_v not_o yet_o speak_v but_o by_o a_o kiss_n and_o in_o one_o place_n this_o salutation_n go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o fall_v on_o the_o neck_n gen._n 46.29_o which_o denote_v the_o ardency_n of_o their_o embrace_n and_o that_o they_o hang_v on_o each_o other_o lip_n as_o if_o they_o be_v loath_a to_o be_v two_o any_o more_o but_o beside_o all_o this_o it_o must_v be_v mark_v that_o the_o kiss_n be_v usual_o accompany_v with_o some_o form_n of_o benediction_n or_o prayer_n for_o their_o welfare_n which_o plain_o appear_v in_o the_o salutation_n of_o two_o treacherous_a person_n joab_n and_o judas_n 2_o sam._n 20.9_o matth._n 26.49_o the_o one_o of_o which_o say_v be_v thou_o in_o health_n my_o brother_n i._n e._n i_o pray_v thou_o may_v be_v as_o i_o hope_v thou_o be_v etc._n etc._n and_o the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o hail_n master_n from_o all_o which_o we_o may_v be_v well_o assure_v that_o these_o christian_a embrace_n do_v only_o melt_v they_o into_o tear_n and_o not_o inflame_v they_o into_o any_o distemper_a heat_n that_o they_o do_v only_o show_v their_o dear_a affection_n and_o hearty_o pray_v to_o god_n that_o all_o peace_n may_v be_v with_o they_o i._n e._n that_o all_o prosperity_n and_o happiness_n may_v be_v their_o portion_n 2._o the_o first_o christian_n have_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o yet_o warm_a upon_o their_o heart_n burn_v with_o such_o charity_n to_o each_o other_o that_o they_o institute_v frequent_a feast_n which_o they_o keep_v at_o the_o same_o time_n after_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n at_o this_o sacred_a meal_n the_o poor_a be_v feast_v together_o with_o the_o rich_a upon_o those_o offering_n which_o the_o rich_a have_v make_v and_o they_o sit_v down_o as_o it_o happen_v without_o any_o distinction_n either_o in_o high_a or_o low_a form_n to_o show_v that_o they_o look_v on_o themselves_o as_o equal_n in_o christ_n and_o fellow-heir_n of_o the_o same_o promise_n these_o feast_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d feast_n of_o love_n or_o charity_n and_o be_v mention_v in_o st._n judas_n ver_fw-la 14._o and_o by_o st._n peter_n 2_o pet._n 2.13_o so_o denominate_v they_o be_v as_o anastasius_n sinaita_n will_v have_v it_o from_o their_o end_n and_o purpose_n which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o draw_v all_o together_o to_o a_o unity_n and_o agreement_n tertullian_n give_v a_o better_a reason_n but_o tend_v to_o the_o same_o sense_n our_o supper_n say_v he_o carry_v its_o reason_n in_o its_o name_n apol._n coena_fw-la nostra_fw-la de_fw-la nomine_fw-la rationem_fw-la svi_fw-la ostendit_fw-la voco_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d id_fw-la quod_fw-la dilectio_fw-la penes_fw-la graecos_n est_fw-la tert._n in_o apol._n for_o agapae_n signify_v love_n in_o the_o greek_a language_n we_o find_v no_o divine_a institution_n for_o these_o entertainment_n yet_o they_o have_v as_o a_o learned_a man_n speak_v sdden_a speak_v montag_n against_o sdden_a divine_a toleration_n and_o they_o have_v a_o good_a beginning_n though_o in_o process_n of_o time_n they_o nourishod_a disorder_n in_o the_o first_o simplicity_n they_o feed_v the_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o the_o body_n and_o charity_n be_v no_o less_o nourish_v than_o their_o carcase_n though_o in_o aftertime_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v they_o make_v great_a expense_n then_o former_o but_o do_v far_o worse_o employ_v they_o and_o therefore_o in_o justin_n martyr_n day_n about_o the_o year_n 160_o as_o far_o as_o one_o can_v guess_v by_o his_o apology_n they_o leave_v they_o off_o and_o dispose_v the_o offering_n more_o advantageous_o into_o a_o common_a bank_n for_o the_o poor_a and_o distress_a person_n for_o they_o be_v not_o like_a man_n now_o that_o take_v away_o abuse_n and_o save_v their_o money_n but_o they_o reform_v the_o mispence_n of_o that_o charity_n which_o they_o still_o continue_v and_o therefore_o those_o agapae_n which_o after-author_n mention_v be_v but_o rare_o celebrate_v on_o their_o birth_n or_o marriage-daye_n or_o at_o their_o funeral_n obsequy_n whence_o a_o dole_n be_v at_o this_o day_n use_v to_o be_v give_v to_o poor_a people_n but_o they_o be_v so_o approve_v of_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n that_o the_o phrase_n of_o break_v bread_n in_o the_o new-testament_n seem_v to_o have_v reference_n to_o this_o whole_a feast_n and_o not_o only_o to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o so_o the_o phrase_n be_v use_v among_o the_o hebrew_n for_o a_o feast_n and_o so_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n cap._n 27.35_o st._n paul_n be_v say_v to_o take_v bread_n and_o give_v thanks_o and_o break_v it_o which_o be_v not_o a_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n but_o a_o common_a meal_n together_o with_o the_o passenger_n in_o the_o same_o ship_n and_o in_o like_a sense_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_n supper_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v 11.20_o 1_o cor._n 11.20_o for_o the_o whole_a feast_n include_v both_o the_o agape_v and_o the_o eucharist_n also_o be_v so_o immediate_o join_v together_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o ignatius_n speak_v of_o this_o under_o the_o name_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o make_v a_o entertainment_n he_o say_v they_o shall_v never_o do_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d smyrn_n epist._n ad_fw-la smyrn_n without_o the_o bishop_n or_o overseer_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o the_o reason_n sure_o be_v because_o this_o sacrament_n be_v always_o join_v with_o that_o feast_n and_o both_o understand_v by_o one_o name_n which_o sacrament_n none_o may_v celebrate_v without_o the_o presence_n of_o he_o that_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n to_o bless_v and_o sanctify_v the_o offering_n that_o be_v bring_v so_o mr._n thorndike_n testify_v church_n review_n of_o right_n of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o find_v in_o a_o ms._n expound_v divers_a greek_a word_n of_o the_o bible_n this_o glof_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_n supper_n be_v to_o dine_v in_o the_o church_n this_o common_a entertainment_n be_v make_v for_o poor_a and_o rich_a out_o of_o the_o stock_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o offering_n that_o be_v bring_v the_o seven_o deacon_n be_v first_o appoint_v to_o attend_v upon_o the_o make_n of_o this_o provision_n and_o relieve_v the_o poor_a otherwise_o which_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o leisure_n for_o to_o mind_n as_o you_o may_v read_v act_v 6.2_o where_o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d serve_v table_n we_o can_v well_o understand_v any_o other_o thing_n then_o provide_v for_o the_o poor_a this_o table_n at_o the_o feast_n of_o charity_n which_o maintain_v a_o singular_a love_n and_o kindness_n among_o they_o all_o so_o great_a a_o kindness_n it_o be_v that_o hereby_o be_v nourish_v that_o the_o heathen_n can_v not_o but_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o as_o invite_v many_o to_o be_v christian_n you_o shall_v find_v frag._n in_o frag._n say_v julian_n among_o the_o galilean_n by_o which_o name_n they_o call_v christian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d their_o feast_n of_o love_n which_o they_o call_v agapae_n their_o entertainment_n and_o their_o serve_v of_o table_n which_o draw_v many_o to_o their_o religion_n and_o this_o be_v the_o great_a thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n reprove_v the_o corinthian_n for_o that_o though_o the_o sacrament_n and_o this_o feast_n be_v appoint_v to_o preserve_v love_n yet_o they_o rude_o abuse_v they_o to_o the_o very_a contrary_a end_n the_o gloss_n of_o oecumenius_n if_o it_o be_v peruse_v will_v make_v this_o very_a clear_a when_o you_o come_v together_o say_v the_o apostle_n etc._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 11.20_o into_o one_o place_n this_o be_v not_o to_o eat_v the_o lord_n
supper_n etc._n etc._n i._n e._n your_o very_a come_n together_o signify_v love_n but_o it_o do_v not_o work_v it_o for_o whereas_o you_o shall_v have_v a_o common_a table_n as_o our_o lord_n be_v you_o make_v it_o your_o own_o pleasure_n and_o exclude_v the_o poor_a from_o it_o but_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o what_o the_o lord_n deliver_v to_o i_o that_o he_o in_o the_o night_n he_o be_v betray_v entertain_v not_o only_o his_o holy_a disciple_n but_o even_o the_o traitor_n judas_n that_o wicked_a enemy_n of_o he_o at_o his_o table_n and_o how_o dare_v you_o therefore_o refuse_v the_o poor_a and_o exclude_v they_o from_o your_o feast_n or_o thus_o if_o the_o lord_n give_v both_o to_o poor_a and_o rich_a his_o body_n and_o blood_n dare_v thou_o separate_v any_o from_o thy_o table_n and_o cast_v a_o scorn_n upon_o they_o if_o he_o give_v thanks_o who_o deliver_v and_o divide_v his_o own_o body_n shall_v not_o thou_o thankful_o and_o with_o the_o great_a joy_n make_v the_o poor_a thy_o companion_n and_o guest_n at_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v give_v from_o he_o to_o thou_o etc._n etc._n i_o tell_v you_o once_o more_o ver_fw-la 27._o that_o whosoever_o eat_v and_o drink_v in_o this_o unworthy_a and_o base_a fashion_n contemn_v the_o poor_a for_o who_o sake_n you_o meet_v together_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o do_v the_o great_a dishonour_n unto_o they_o by_o handle_v they_o with_o such_o impure_a hauds_z and_o at_o last_o ver_fw-la 33.34_o he_o advise_v they_o that_o they_o will_v stay_v one_o for_o another_o and_o if_o through_o hunger_n they_o can_v not_o well_o expect_v long_o he_o bid_v they_o eat_v at_o home_n and_o not_o come_v together_o for_o condemnation_n upon_o which_o word_n the_o same_o author_n thus_o gloss_v you_o come_v together_o to_o the_o supper_n for_o love_n and_o if_o that_o be_v in_o your_o heart_n you_o have_v better_o take_v a_o refection_n at_o home_n then_o by_o cast_v a_o contempt_n upon_o your_o brethren_n show_v that_o you_o have_v no_o love_n at_o all_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a also_o that_o first_o from_o these_o feast_n they_o send_v portion_n to_o those_o that_o be_v absent_a to_o testify_v their_o love_n unto_o they_o and_o so_o afterward_o as_o be_v most_o certain_a the_o custom_n grow_v to_o send_v from_o the_o eucharist_n some_o of_o the_o bless_a bread_n to_o those_o that_o can_v not_o come_v unto_o their_o assembly_n so_o justin_n say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o carry_v away_o some_o part_n to_o those_o that_o be_v not_o present_a which_o i_o suppose_v arise_v in_o imitation_n of_o the_o jewwish_a manner_n who_o in_o their_o feast_n send_v portion_n one_o to_o another_o that_o they_o may_v more_o express_v their_o friendship_n which_o they_o desire_v to_o continue_v the_o heathen_n likewise_o be_v not_o stranger_n to_o this_o custom_n as_o one_o example_n out_o of_o many_o will_v bear_v sufficient_a witness_n when_o agesilaus_n offer_v his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d agesilaus_n plut._n in_o vita_fw-la agesilaus_n sacrifice_n for_o glad_a tiding_n of_o a_o victory_n he_o send_v piece_n of_o the_o flesh_n to_o his_o friend_n that_o he_o may_v make_v they_o partaker_n in_o his_o joy_n all_o which_o i_o mention_v only_o for_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v see_v how_o desirous_a they_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o religion_n to_o keep_v up_o a_o mutual_a charity_n as_o the_o great_a honour_n of_o it_o which_o make_v they_o omit_v no_o custom_n that_o have_v be_v oblige_v among_o the_o jew_n if_o it_o may_v help_v to_o promote_v the_o love_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o then_o they_o have_v their_o collection_n for_o the_o poor_a which_o ensue_v their_o participation_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n this_o the_o apostle_n mention_n loc_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d oecum_fw-la in_o loc_n 1_o cor._n 16.1_o 2._o when_o he_o bid_v they_o on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n when_o the_o mystery_n be_v celebrate_v to_o lay_v by_o something_o for_o the_o use_n of_o distress_a christian_n which_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o other_o church_n and_o justin_n martyr_n word_n may_v be_v a_o good_a comment_n upon_o that_o text_n when_o he_o say_v after_o these_o thing_n i._n e._n receive_v the_o sacrament_n we_o always_o remember_v one_o another_o of_o they_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n they_o that_o have_v 2._o apolog._n 2._o do_v help_v those_o that_o want_v every_o man_n give_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a as_o he_o himself_o think_v fit_a to_o do_v and_o that_o which_o be_v gather_v be_v lay_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o precedent_n i._n e._n the_o chief_a minister_n wherewith_o he_o help_v the_o orphan_n and_o widow_n relieve_v those_o that_o be_v sick_a or_o in_o prison_n and_o those_o that_o travel_n and_o all_o stranger_n and_o to_o be_v short_a he_o be_v the_o curator_n of_o all_o that_o be_v in_o need_n you_o may_v perceive_v likewise_o by_o the_o apostle_n word_n that_o their_o charity_n be_v no_o less_o large_a than_o the_o world_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o empale_v in_o a_o particular_a church_n but_o do_v stretch_v its_o hand_n to_o the_o far_a part_n by_o send_v relief_n to_o jerusalem_n from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n come_v unto_o they_o but_o beside_o these_o there_o be_v other_o offering_n as_o we_o call_v they_o at_o this_o day_n which_o the_o people_n bring_v both_o for_o the_o celebrate_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n these_o gift_n as_o a_o adversary_n confess_v be_v call_v sacrifice_n 3._o diony_n petau._n diatrib_o in_o syness_n cap._n 3._o though_o come_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o people_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o cyprian_a chide_v the_o rich_a people_n that_o they_o throw_v nothing_o into_o the_o corban_n and_o come_v into_o god_n house_n sine_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la eleemos_n l._n de_fw-fr opere_fw-la &_o eleemos_n without_o a_o sacrifice_n yea_o do_v eat_v part_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o the_o poor_a have_v offer_v with_o these_o sacrifice_n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o god_n be_v well_o please_v and_o they_o that_o do_v offer_v they_o do_v it_o to_o testify_v their_o love_n to_o god_n who_o have_v give_v they_o such_o good_a thing_n and_o their_o love_n to_o their_o brethren_n who_o they_o desire_v shall_v share_v with_o they_o in_o god_n blessing_n they_o be_v both_o a_o piece_n off_o god_n worship_n and_o give_v glory_n to_o he_o psal_n 96.8_o diog._n it_o be_v account_v a_o favour_n to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o offertory_n i._n e._n to_o have_v their_o money_n accept_v which_o they_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o it_o be_v a_o punishment_n to_o communicate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o offer_v as_o a_o perfect_a communion_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o communión_n with_o offer_v petavius_n ib._n epist_n ad_fw-la diog._n and_o likewise_o a_o piece_n of_o great_a charity_n that_o make_v other_o glorify_v his_o name_n by_o these_o and_o all_o other_o way_n they_o express_v such_o a_o affection_n that_o it_o be_v the_o talk_n of_o the_o heathen_n and_o that_o whereby_o they_o be_v know_v by_o all_o man_n to_o be_v his_o disciple_n and_o therefore_o when_o diogenetus_n send_v to_o justin_n martyr_n to_o know_v something_o more_o particular_o concern_v the_o christian_a way_n he_o inquire_v not_o only_o what_o god_n they_o trust_v in_o and_o how_o they_o worship_v he_o and_o what_o make_v they_o contemn_v the_o world_n and_o despise_v death_n etc._n etc._n but_o also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d what_o be_v that_o their_o dear_a affection_n which_o they_o do_v bear_v unto_o each_o other_o this_o be_v more_o fame_v in_o the_o world_n than_o the_o noble_a band_n of_o lover_n that_o die_v at_o each_o other_o side_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o receive_v those_o wound_n into_o their_o own_o body_n which_o be_v deal_v to_o their_o companion_n for_o they_o do_v not_o only_o impart_v their_o good_n but_o their_o own_o self_n and_o be_v prepare_v to_o lay_v down_o their_o life_n for_o the_o brethren_n and_o if_o the_o relief_n they_o bestow_v on_o each_o other_o be_v like_o incense_n and_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n phil._n 4.18_o then_o the_o give_v of_o themselves_o be_v something_o like_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n and_o too_o great_a a_o charity_n to_o be_v resemble_v to_o any_o thing_n but_o his_o sacrifice_n 4._o and_o there_o be_v another_o thing_n that_o be_v sometime_o in_o use_n which_o testify_v their_o love_n to_o all_o christian_n throughout_o the_o world_n one_o church_n send_v a_o loaf_n of_o bread_n to_o another_o as_o a_o token_n of_o their_o consent_n in_o faith_n and_o their_o consort_n in_o affection_n which_o they_o that_o do_v
to_o be_v spend_v the_o better_a meditation_n and_o retire_a thought_n fit_v we_o for_o prayer_n and_o prayer_n again_o nourish_v and_o feed_v our_o meditation_n both_o those_o fit_v we_o to_o receive_v holy_a exhortation_n and_o useful_a instruction_n in_o sermon_n and_o they_o again_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o more_o frequency_n and_o fervency_n in_o prayer_n and_o meditation_n and_o these_o together_o with_o all_o the_o former_a that_o i_o have_v mention_v prepare_v we_o for_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o keep_v the_o holy_a feast_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o again_o afford_v such_o nutriment_n that_o it_o make_v we_o strong_a in_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o perform_v all_o other_o duty_n with_o a_o great_a gust_n and_o relish_v with_o more_o delight_n to_o god_n and_o unto_o ourselves_o vii_o but_o it_o must_v also_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v some_o other_o preparation_n requisite_a to_o holy_a duty_n beside_o all_o this_o that_o i_o have_v mention_v for_o though_o fervency_n in_o any_o one_o duty_n of_o our_o religion_n do_v but_o fit_v we_o to_o be_v more_o fervent_a in_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o though_o the_o work_n of_o our_o employment_n conscientious_o discharge_v do_v fit_a we_o for_o the_o duty_n of_o religion_n yet_o to_o the_o do_v of_o they_o fervent_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o we_o lie_v out_o of_o our_o mind_n all_o other_o thought_n that_o concern_v not_o they_o now_o the_o work_n of_o our_o ordinary_a employment_n be_v about_o a_o different_a matter_n from_o the_o work_n of_o devotion_n and_o the_o mind_n full_a of_o one_o thing_n not_o be_v able_a present_o to_o be_v void_a for_o other_o company_n we_o must_v spend_v some_o time_n to_o discharge_v our_o thought_n of_o such_o object_n as_o be_v alien_a to_o these_o holy_a duty_n we_o go_v about_o constancy_n in_o our_o lawful_a business_n do_v hinder_v many_o indisposition_n and_o ill_a habit_n in_o our_o mind_n that_o else_o will_v grow_v up_o in_o we_o but_o yet_o they_o themselves_o may_v leave_v some_o little_a indisposition_n in_o we_o at_o least_o to_o such_o a_o fervency_n in_o devotion_n as_o we_o will_v arise_v unto_o they_o therefore_o must_v be_v turn_v out_o of_o door_n and_o the_o thought_n of_o they_o must_v be_v lay_v aside_o that_o god_n may_v come_v in_o and_o possess_v himself_o of_o we_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n exod._n 27.4_o 5._o be_v make_v with_o a_o grate_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o it_o that_o let_v the_o ash_n fall_v through_o so_o that_o the_o fire_n may_v burn_v hot_a and_o more_o pure_o but_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o it_o be_v most_o likely_a that_o the_o sacrifice_n will_v need_v some_o stir_v that_o so_o the_o ash_n may_v be_v shake_v off_o more_o perfect_o and_o it_o more_o entire_o consume_v and_o therefore_o you_o read_v of_o fleshhook_n among_o the_o utensil_n of_o the_o altar_n wherewith_o the_o priest_n order_v the_o flesh_n while_o it_o burn_v in_o the_o fire_n just_o so_o it_o be_v with_o our_o heart_n in_o which_o a_o continual_a fire_n ought_v to_o burn_v though_o they_o be_v like_o a_o grate_n or_o seive_v and_o let_v worldly_a thought_n pass_v through_o and_o run_v out_o of_o they_o which_o else_o like_o ash_n will_v make_v the_o flame_n to_o be_v dim_a and_o pale_a yet_o beside_o this_o care_n there_o will_v be_v need_n of_o some_o shake_n and_o stir_v up_o of_o ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v more_o full_o clear_v our_o heart_n of_o all_o those_o earthly_a clog_n that_o will_v stick_v and_o cling_v unto_o we_o now_o the_o high_a that_o holy_a act_n of_o worship_n be_v which_o we_o be_v to_o perform_v and_o the_o seldomer_n it_o do_v return_v to_o be_v perform_v and_o the_o more_o vehement_a that_o expression_n of_o love_n be_v which_o we_o will_v make_v in_o it_o the_o more_o solemn_a must_v be_v our_o preparation_n and_o the_o large_a time_n there_o must_v be_v allow_v for_o take_v our_o mind_n from_o other_o thing_n and_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o serious_a intention_n upon_o this_o alone_a and_o therefore_o since_o our_o approach_n to_o the_o lord_n table_n be_v of_o such_o moment_n and_o since_o they_o profit_v we_o not_o without_o the_o operation_n of_o our_o own_o mind_n and_o that_o benefit_n likewise_o so_o great_a when_o we_o come_v aright_o it_o can_v be_v think_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v use_v a_o great_a care_n and_o circumspection_n to_o fit_v ourselves_o for_o such_o near_o converse_v especial_o since_o they_o be_v not_o so_o frequent_o perform_v as_o other_o duty_n and_o yet_o in_o this_o preparation_n there_o be_v also_o a_o latitude_n so_o that_o i_o can_v well_o determine_v how_o much_o be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o be_v do_v and_o if_o i_o shall_v still_o we_o may_v go_v beyond_o those_o limit_n and_o perform_v more_o acceptable_a service_n unto_o god_n if_o you_o will_v know_v now_o after_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v wherein_o preparation_n to_o his_o holy_a duty_n do_v more_o particular_o consist_v i_o may_v brief_o resolve_v you_o about_o it_o thus_o we_o must_v deny_v to_o ourselves_o lawful_a thing_n by_o sequestration_n of_o ourselves_o from_o our_o ordinary_a business_n by_o abstinence_n from_o food_n and_o from_o the_o most_o chaste_a embrace_n which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o 1_o cor._n 7.5_o and_o this_o must_v be_v do_v for_o no_o other_o end_n but_o that_o we_o may_v more_o full_o know_v the_o estate_n of_o our_o soul_n which_o i_o suppose_v we_o be_v already_o acquaint_v withal_o and_o be_v more_o deep_o apprehensive_a of_o the_o evil_a of_o sin_n and_o more_o sorrowful_o bewail_v it_o and_o more_o rational_o resolve_v against_o it_o that_o we_o may_v pray_v with_o great_a appetite_n and_o praise_v his_o name_n with_o a_o more_o delicious_a relish_n when_o we_o distaste_n all_o other_o thing_n and_o in_o short_a that_o by_o disburden_v of_o our_o body_n we_o may_v ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n with_o great_a felicity_n in_o our_o thought_n and_o meditation_n and_o because_o preparation_n to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v the_o prime_a end_n of_o this_o discourse_n i_o shall_v next_o descend_v to_o treat_v of_o that_o and_o in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n consider_v what_o great_a degree_n of_o holiness_n may_v be_v conceive_v requisite_a to_o the_o right_a performance_n of_o that_o christian_a duty_n chap._n x._o i._o that_o we_o be_v to_o lay_v aside_o some_o time_n before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n all_o our_o worldly_a employment_n though_o never_o so_o innocent_a have_v be_v already_o suggest_v we_o must_v so_o order_v our_o affair_n that_o they_o may_v not_o hinder_v we_o in_o any_o of_o those_o act_n which_o i_o be_o about_o to_o mention_v and_o if_o they_o prove_v to_o be_v of_o great_a weight_n than_o this_o thing_n must_v needs_o be_v premise_v for_o every_o act_n must_v have_v some_o time_n allow_v wherein_o it_o be_v to_o be_v do_v and_o we_o can_v do_v two_o thing_n at_o one_o time_n especial_o when_o they_o be_v of_o such_o a_o distant_a nature_n as_o spiritual_a a_o carnal_a thing_n we_o find_v in_o ourselves_o that_o when_o one_o faculty_n be_v in_o act_n we_o can_v intend_v the_o act_n of_o another_o porphyr_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d porphyr_n we_o can_v at_o the_o same_o time_n operate_v according_a to_o the_o brutal_a part_n and_o contemplate_v the_o thing_n of_o a_o rational_a life_n much_o less_o can_v one_o faculty_n mind_n two_o object_n at_o once_o or_o can_v our_o mind_n be_v busy_v both_o about_o our_o earthly_a affair_n and_o our_o spiritual_a concernment_n and_o beside_o this_o see_v it_o be_v the_o design_n of_o a_o christian_a in_o this_o duty_n to_o get_v as_o near_o to_o heaven_n as_o he_o can_v it_o be_v the_o more_o necessary_a that_o he_o not_o only_o lay_v aside_o his_o business_n but_o his_o body_n too_o he_o be_v to_o endeavour_v to_o strip_v himself_o of_o his_o clothes_n to_o put_v off_o his_o outward_a man_n that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o more_o naked_a and_o open_a sight_n of_o future_a glory_n and_o render_v his_o mind_n more_o sensible_a of_o god_n and_o fit_a to_o receive_v a_o deep_a impression_n from_o his_o hand_n at_o this_o season_n we_o be_v to_o put_v forth_o the_o strong_a act_n of_o faith_n to_o excite_v the_o hot_a flame_n of_o love_n to_o renew_v our_o resolution_n to_o bind_v the_o obligation_n that_o be_v upon_o we_o fast_o about_o our_o soul_n which_o can_v be_v do_v but_o by_o a_o solemn_a heart_n so_o that_o this_o separation_n from_o our_o business_n beforehand_o seem_v to_o come_v within_o some_o degree_n of_o a_o necessary_a duty_n and_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o tell_v you_o that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o thing_n of_o singular_a advantage_n if_o those_o that_o have_v so_o
have_v lay_v down_o to_o ourselves_o as_o the_o guide_n of_o our_o life_n from_o these_o two_o arise_v the_o whole_a of_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v do_v continual_o for_o the_o approbation_n of_o ourselves_o to_o be_v such_o person_n as_o have_v a_o care_n to_o please_v god_n now_o this_o may_v be_v the_o prime_n and_o first_o sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n when_o he_o say_v let_v a_o man_n examine_v himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v etc._n etc._n i._n e._n let_v he_o have_v a_o care_n that_o he_o lead_v such_o a_o christian_a life_n that_o his_o own_o heart_n may_v approve_v of_o he_o as_o one_o of_o christ_n disciple_n this_o you_o may_v be_v best_a satisfy_v out_o of_o another_o place_n where_o this_o word_n be_v use_v gal._n 6.4_o let_v a_o man_n prove_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o examine_v his_o own_o work_n etc._n etc._n the_o meaning_n of_o which_o be_v let_v every_o man_n make_v his_o work_n so_o approve_v and_o behave_v himself_o in_o that_o manner_n that_o both_o god_n and_o his_o own_o conscience_n may_v judge_v it_o to_o be_v right_a and_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o phrase_n in_o that_o place_n will_v appear_v from_o the_o whole_a context_n where_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o bear_v the_o infirmity_n of_o the_o weak_a and_o not_o think_v ourselves_o to_o be_v godly_a because_o we_o do_v not_o fall_v like_o they_o by_o any_o temptation_n and_o so_o say_v he_o thou_o shall_v have_v glory_n or_o rejoice_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d towards_o thyself_o and_o not_o in_o regard_n of_o another_o i._n e._n thou_o shall_v take_v comfort_n simple_o in_o thyself_o that_o thou_o be_v a_o good_a man_n and_o not_o only_o be_v please_v with_o compare_v thyself_o with_o other_o and_o be_v better_o than_o they_o for_o so_o thou_o may_v be_v and_o yet_o not_o be_v good_a from_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o something_o that_o shall_v follow_v the_o action_n of_o our_o life_n viz._n a_o search_a whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o no_o but_o of_o such_o a_o institution_n and_o order_n of_o our_o life_n beforehand_o that_o we_o may_v not_o fall_v into_o those_o sin_n which_o we_o reprehend_v in_o another_o nor_o be_v behold_v to_o their_o sin_n to_o make_v we_o seem_v godly_a and_o the_o next_o word_n v._o 5._o plead_v for_o this_o sense_n for_o every_o man_n shall_v bear_v his_o own_o burden_n i._n e._n thou_o ought_v to_o make_v thy_o work_n good_a and_o approve_a for_o every_o man_n sin_n at_o his_o own_o peril_n one_o man_n sin_n will_v not_o excuse_v thou_o who_o do_v not_o sin_n in_o that_o fashion_n but_o thou_o be_v to_o do_v thy_o own_o duty_n hearty_o to_o god_n according_a to_o thy_o conscience_n or_o else_o thou_o shall_v suffer_v as_o well_o as_o he_o and_o that_o the_o apostle_n may_v have_v respect_n unto_o this_o examination_n before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n in_o that_o place_n beforementioned_a there_o be_v another_o phrase_n follow_v v._o 31._o which_o may_v persuade_v we_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o if_o we_o judge_v ourselves_o etc._n etc._n i._n e._n if_o we_o do_v discern_v ourselves_o and_o discriminate_a our_o action_n and_o determine_v our_o duty_n and_o live_v in_o conformity_n to_o it_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v judge_v nor_o punish_v of_o god_n in_o this_o sort_n but_o whether_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a meaning_n of_o examine_v or_o not_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v overmuch_o solicitous_a see_v i_o have_v already_o make_v this_o good_a that_o he_o must_v be_v a_o holy_a person_n that_o come_v to_o god_n table_n and_o that_o there_o be_v beside_o this_o a_o more_o particular_a examination_n to_o be_v use_v when_o the_o time_n be_v near_o of_o communicate_v with_o our_o lord_n i_o willing_o grant_v and_o it_o consist_v of_o two_o part_n according_a to_o the_o twofold_a use_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o render_v examine_v the_o first_o be_v a_o proof_n trial_n and_o search_n into_o our_o own_o soul_n that_o we_o may_v know_v our_o estate_n and_o in_o what_o condition_n we_o stand_v before_o god_n so_o the_o word_n be_v use_v 1_o thess_n 5.21_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d prove_v all_o thing_n i._n e._n make_v a_o trial_n of_o they_o and_o consider_v what_o they_o be_v and_o then_o hold_v fast_o that_o which_o you_o find_v to_o be_v good_a this_o examination_n consider_v that_o i_o suppose_v a_o pious_a life_n to_o precede_v must_v chief_o consist_v in_o a_o review_n of_o those_o fail_n or_o of_o those_o want_n which_o our_o everyday_n proof_n of_o ourselves_o do_v present_v we_o withal_o if_o we_o shall_v never_o examine_v ourselves_o but_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n we_o shall_v not_o know_v what_o we_o be_v nor_o what_o we_o need_v but_o in_o a_o confuse_a heap_n of_o thing_n many_o will_v be_v unobserved_a and_o yet_o if_o we_o shall_v not_o also_o examine_v then_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v such_o a_o lively_a sense_n of_o what_o we_o be_v to_o ask_v and_o for_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o plead_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o then_o this_o examination_n be_v but_o a_o serious_a reflection_n upon_o the_o note_n which_o we_o take_v every_o day_n of_o ourselves_o unless_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o we_o examine_v ourselves_o whether_o we_o have_v not_o forget_v any_o of_o the_o end_n for_o which_o we_o go_v to_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o though_o that_o be_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n yet_o i_o have_v already_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o in_o short_a we_o be_v to_o search_v rather_o in_o what_o state_n our_o grace_n stand_v than_o whether_o we_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n or_o no._n then_o second_o we_o must_v approve_v and_o allow_v of_o ourselves_o and_o bring_v the_o trial_n to_o such_o a_o issue_n that_o we_o pass_v a_o verdict_n on_o our_o soul_n so_o the_o word_n be_v use_v rom._n 2.18_o thou_o approve_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o thing_n that_o be_v excellent_a i._n e._n thou_o profess_v to_o like_v and_o embrace_v they_o and_o so_o when_o the_o apostle_n bid_v the_o child_n of_o the_o light_n to_o prove_v what_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n ephes_n 5.8_o 10._o he_o do_v not_o mean_v a_o bare_a inquisition_n but_o that_o act_n which_o follow_v it_o which_o be_v embrace_v for_o they_o can_v be_v deem_v child_n of_o the_o light_n who_o do_v not_o so_o inquire_v after_o the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n as_o to_o pursue_v and_o practice_v it_o the_o meaning_n likewise_o of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 14.22_o be_v this_o happy_a be_v he_o that_o when_o he_o use_v a_o indifferent_a thing_n do_v approve_v himself_o as_o do_v that_o which_o be_v lawful_a and_o act_v not_o against_o his_o conscience_n or_o this_o happy_a be_v he_o that_o when_o he_o be_v resolve_v that_o he_o may_v do_v such_o a_o thing_n lawful_o and_o with_o the_o approbation_n of_o his_o conscience_n yet_o do_v it_o with_o such_o a_o care_n that_o he_o hurt_v not_o other_o by_o the_o use_n of_o it_o there_o be_v one_o place_n more_o 2_o cor._n 13.5_o where_o you_o have_v both_o these_o part_n of_o examination_n together_o try_v yourselves_o whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n prove_v i._n e._n approve_v yourselves_o when_o you_o know_v your_o estate_n by_o trial_n then_o pass_v a_o judgement_n upon_o yourselves_o to_o be_v what_o you_o profess_v and_o pretend_v unto_o now_o all_o the_o approbation_n that_o a_o good_a man_n be_v to_o give_v of_o himself_o before_o he_o go_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v this_o 1._o he_o ought_v to_o judge_v himself_o to_o continue_v a_o friend_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o remain_v as_o far_o as_o he_o can_v find_v in_o covenant_n with_o god_n and_o 2._o he_o ought_v to_o find_v that_o he_o have_v use_v some_o godly_a care_n and_o diligence_n that_o he_o come_v not_o in_o a_o rude_a unbeseeming_a and_o drowsy_a manner_n into_o so_o holy_a a_o presence_n and_o this_o be_v plain_o another_o part_n of_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n when_o he_o say_v let_v a_o man_n examine_v himself_o and_o so_o eat_v etc._n etc._n i._n e._n let_v he_o approve_v himself_o to_o come_v for_o pious_a and_o holy_a end_n and_o with_o a_o due_a regard_n to_o the_o lord_n most_o sacred_a body_n and_o blood_n lay_v thy_o hand_n then_o christian_n reader_n upon_o thy_o heart_n before_o thou_o come_v to_o this_o table_n and_o feel_v how_o the_o pulse_n of_o thy_o soul_n beat_v mind_n whether_o it_o beat_v even_o or_o after_o a_o distemper_a sort_n do_v it_o move_v three_o time_n as_o quick_a when_o thou_o think_v of_o the_o world_n as_o it_o do_v when_o god_n be_v in_o
meet_v and_o embrace_v its_o gracious_a lord_n i_o think_v i_o behold_v it_o prepare_v a_o gift_n of_o its_o whole_a self_n to_o offer_v unto_o he_o and_o such_o flame_n of_o love_n seem_v to_o be_v kindle_v as_o if_o it_o will_v fly_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o stay_v it_o must_v first_o cast_v one_o look_v downward_o towards_o its_o sinful_a self_n before_o it_o can_v think_v of_o get_v up_o so_o high_a and_o of_o be_v a_o gift_n acceptable_a to_o god_n it_o can_v not_o indeed_o but_o think_v of_o give_v the_o best_a it_o have_v to_o he_o who_o give_v all_o himself_o to_o it_o but_o alas_o the_o time_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v and_o it_o be_v not_o good_a enough_o for_o to_o begve_v to_o he_o it_o will_v try_v if_o it_o can_v make_v itself_o a_o little_o better_a though_o never_o good_a enough_o before_o it_o offer_v up_o itself_o by_o make_v its_o sin_n feel_v the_o weight_n and_o sharpness_n of_o christ_n cross_n that_o they_o may_v all_o die_v it_o will_v make_v a_o slaughter_n of_o they_o and_o then_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o itself_o which_o be_v the_o three_o meditation_n i_o have_v to_o recommend_v to_o your_o thought_n 3._o consider_v how_o odious_a vile_a and_o intolerable_a every_o sin_n be_v that_o bring_v our_o lord_n to_o such_o misery_n and_o require_v such_o a_o blood_n to_o expiate_v it_o this_o hatred_n of_o sin_n proceed_v from_o great_a love_n and_o the_o vile_a we_o see_v it_o be_v the_o more_o will_v our_o love_n increase_v to_o he_o that_o will_v pardon_v such_o a_o shameful_a act_n think_v therefore_o what_o be_v that_o which_o make_v god_n so_o angry_a what_o bloody_a thing_n be_v it_o which_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n himself_o what_o hideous_a monster_n that_o can_v not_o be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o flesh_n of_o all_o the_o world_n what_o curse_a thing_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n become_v a_o curse_n for_o it_o the_o thought_n of_o christ_n cross_n be_v enough_o to_o affright_v a_o man_n out_o of_o the_o very_a arm_n and_o pleasant_a embrace_n of_o a_o lust_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o rescue_v a_o soul_n that_o be_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o hell_n and_o ready_a to_o go_v down_o the_o throat_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n if_o it_o can_v but_o find_v any_o place_n to_o take_v hold_n of_o it_o can_v drag_v a_o man_n out_o of_o the_o very_a jaw_n of_o the_o monster_n and_o it_o can_v arm_v the_o revenge_n of_o the_o very_a dote_a lover_n that_o ever_o court_a sin_n and_o turn_v his_o wrath_n against_o it_o but._n then_o how_o amiable_a do_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n appear_v that_o he_o will_v pass_v by_o so_o many_o offence_n and_o require_v no_o satisfaction_n from_o we_o for_o such_o insufferable_a wrong_n how_o great_a be_v his_o love_n that_o he_o will_v transfer_v the_o punishment_n from_o we_o unto_o his_o son_n and_o how_o great_a be_v his_o son_n love_n that_o he_o will_v bear_v our_o iniquity_n that_o by_o his_o stripe_n we_o may_v be_v heal_v nay_o none_o can_v tell_v nor_o think_v how_o great_a the_o love_n be_v but_o the_o more_o heinous_a and_o grievous_a our_o offence_n seem_v the_o more_o glorious_o will_v it_o shine_v in_o our_o eye_n and_o again_o the_o more_o lovely_a god_n appear_v the_o more_o shall_v we_o hate_v sin_n that_o do_v any_o injury_n to_o so_o good_a a_o god_n let_v we_o therefore_o stay_v our_o thought_n here_o a_o while_n and_o think_v we_o hear_v christ_n say_v to_o we_o you_o have_v look_v into_o my_o wound_n and_o have_v see_v into_o my_o very_a heart_n if_o you_o have_v any_o eye_n sure_o you_o can_v but_o discern_v what_o have_v put_v i_o into_o this_o gore_n do_v you_o not_o see_v how_o sin_n rake_v in_o my_o side_n and_o tear_v my_o very_a heart_n do_v you_o not_o see_v how_o greedy_o it_o suck_v my_o blood_n behold_v the_o very_a print_n of_o its_o nail_n see_v here_o the_o very_a place_n where_o it_o have_v thrust_v its_o spear_n you_o say_v you_o be_v my_o friend_n will_v you_o not_o take_v my_o part_n against_o your_o sin_n have_v not_o all_o these_o wound_n mouth_n enough_o to_o entreat_v you_o to_o fall_v out_o with_o sin_n will_v you_o have_v i_o use_v thus_o again_o can_v you_o find_v in_o your_o heart_n to_o see_v i_o once_o more_o upon_o a_o gibbet_n why_o then_o can_v you_o not_o be_v persuade_v by_o the_o remembrance_n of_o my_o suffering_n for_o you_o why_o do_v you_o not_o spit_v in_o the_o face_n of_o your_o sin_n why_o do_v you_o not_o buffet_v and_o beat_v they_o and_o do_v all_o the_o despite_n you_o can_v unto_o they_o yea_o why_o do_v you_o not_o revenge_v i_o perfect_o upon_o they_o and_o cry_v crucify_v they_o crucify_v they_o not_o these_o but_o christ_n only_o why_o do_v i_o not_o see_v they_o here_o nail_v to_o my_o cross_n never_o to_o be_v take_v down_o till_o they_o be_v quite_o dead_a if_o you_o will_v have_v i_o embrace_v you_o say_v none_o but_o christ_n none_o but_o christ_n christ_n and_o wound_n christ_n and_o a_o cross_n christ_n and_o death_n if_o he_o will_v shall_v be_v our_o portion_n what_o i_o beseech_v you_o will_v our_o heart_n echo_v back_o again_o if_o we_o think_v that_o we_o hear_v he_o groan_v such_o word_n from_o the_o cross_n unto_o we_o what_o a_o fury_n and_o a_o rage_n will_v it_o put_v we_o into_o against_o these_o bloody_a sin_n with_o what_o a_o forwardness_n shall_v we_o arm_v ourselves_o against_o they_o with_o what_o a_o revenge_n shall_v we_o fly_v upon_o they_o we_o can_v not_o but_o with_o all_o speed_n drag_v they_o to_o the_o cross_n and_o torture_v they_o to_o death_n we_o can_v not_o but_o pass_v sentence_n and_o do_v the_o severe_a execution_n upon_o they_o though_o they_o beg_v never_o so_o much_o for_o life_n the_o voice_n of_o christ_n will_v drown_v their_o cry_n though_o all_o their_o friend_n &_o familiar_n entreat_v for_o they_o their_o petition_n will_v be_v cast_v out_o though_o our_o eye_n shall_v pity_v they_o and_o beseech_v that_o they_o may_v be_v spare_v though_o our_o tongue_n and_o palate_n shall_v plead_v for_o their_o life_n though_o all_o our_o sense_n though_o every_o part_n of_o our_o flesh_n shall_v solicit_v in_o their_o behalf_n yet_o we_o shall_v never_o endure_v that_o our_o lord_n shall_v be_v disgu_v and_o affront_v any_o more_o by_o they_o when_o caesar_n be_v slay_v by_o brutus_n and_o his_o complice_n anthony_n take_v his_o bloody_a garment_n and_o spread_v they_o before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n as_o if_o every_o hole_n which_o their_o dagger_n have_v make_v will_v speak_v a_o oration_n unto_o they_o behold_v say_v he_o the_o blood_n of_o your_o emperor_n see_v here_o the_o wound_n they_o have_v give_v unto_o he_o can_v you_o love_v these_o parricide_n that_o have_v stick_v he_o like_o a_o beast_n can_v you_o look_v with_o patience_n upon_o the_o butchery_n they_o have_v commit_v can_v you_o look_v through_o these_o clothes_n without_o fire_n in_o your_o eye_n and_o immediate_o he_o so_o move_v the_o multitude_n by_o that_o artifice_n and_o the_o vehemency_n of_o his_o oration_n that_o they_o run_v upon_o the_o house_n of_o the_o murderer_n as_o tiger_n or_o wolf_n upon_o their_o prey_n and_o will_v as_o certain_o have_v tear_v they_o in_o piece_n as_o a_o lion_n do_v a_o kid_n in_o the_o heat_n of_o his_o anger_n but_o that_o they_o be_v before_o flee_v from_o the_o danger_n can_v then_o the_o representation_n not_o of_o the_o rend_a garment_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o of_o his_o very_a break_a body_n more_o move_v a_o considerate_a heart_n against_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o slaughterer_n can_v the_o very_a sign_n of_o his_o sacred_a blood_n pierce_v with_o great_a rhetoric_n into_o his_o soul_n think_v that_o thou_o hear_v christ_n himself_o say_v behold_v my_o wound_n see_v here_o the_o breach_n in_o my_o body_n look_v upon_o i_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v read_v in_o i_o the_o cruelty_n of_o thy_o sin_n can_v thou_o hug_v and_o embrace_v these_o bloody_a parricide_n can_v thou_o show_v any_o kindness_n to_o so_o vile_a a_o enemy_n have_v thou_o the_o patience_n to_o hear_v i_o ask_v any_o more_o question_n and_o reason_n with_o thou_o any_o further_a sure_o in_o the_o middle_n of_o such_o thought_n as_o these_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o man_n can_v not_o but_o take_v fire_n and_o be_v so_o incense_v and_o provoke_v against_o all_o his_o sin_n that_o he_o will_v leave_v they_o all_o dead_a at_o the_o foot_n of_o christ_n not_o one_o of_o they_o can_v escape_v but_o every_o man_n hand_n will_v be_v against_o his_o particular_a lust_n and_o there_o they_o shall_v lie_v bleed_v as_o so_o many_o sacrifice_n at_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o who_o can_v lie_v
under_o the_o load_n of_o sin_n when_o he_o behold_v christ_n groan_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o it_o who_o heart_n can_v remain_v unbroken_a when_o he_o see_v his_o body_n break_v for_o we_o who_o can_v withhold_v his_o eye_n from_o tear_n when_o he_o see_v the_o wound_n of_o christ_n weep_v blood_n for_o we_o behold_v o_o lord_n will_v such_o a_o man_n soul_n answer_v unto_o he_o i_o be_o sorry_a that_o my_o sin_n have_v live_v so_o long_o it_o be_v sore_o against_o my_o will_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o of_o they_o now_o to_o kill_v fain_o will_v i_o have_v have_v their_o life_n but_o they_o be_v hitherto_o overstrong_a for_o i_o o_o do_v thou_o strike_v my_o soul_n through_o with_o a_o sense_n of_o thy_o suffering_n and_o they_o will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o endure_v thy_o hand_n do_v thou_o transfix_v i_o first_o with_o a_o sense_n of_o my_o baseness_n and_o then_o with_o a_o sense_n of_o thy_o love_n and_o sure_o they_o can_v but_o die_v when_o they_o feel_v thy_o pain_n i_o be_o resolve_v not_o to_o carry_v away_o one_o of_o they_o alive_a if_o they_o have_v a_o thousand_o life_n they_o shall_v lose_v they_o all_o that_o my_o soul_n may_v live_v to_o thou_o how_o it_o will_v delight_v our_o lord_n to_o hear_v such_o language_n in_o man_n heart_n it_o be_v not_o for_o i_o to_o express_v nor_o can_v you_o imagine_v how_o you_o shall_v please_v he_o better_o and_o draw_v he_o more_o powerful_o into_o your_o arm_n then_o by_o such_o discourse_n within_o yourselves_o nor_o can_v you_o ever_o think_v to_o get_v the_o victory_n over_o your_o sin_n and_o bring_v they_o under_o your_o hatred_n and_o displeasure_n if_o such_o a_o sight_n as_o christ_n crucify_v before_o your_o eye_n be_v not_o able_a to_o effect_v it_o never_o will_v they_o be_v kill_v if_o they_o can_v outlive_v the_o sight_n of_o a_o bleed_a saviour_n never_o shall_v we_o get_v they_o under_o our_o power_n if_o they_o can_v escape_v with_o their_o life_n when_o we_o remember_v so_o solemn_o his_o accurse_a death_n iii_o when_o we_o see_v he_o that_o minister_n come_v to_o give_v the_o bread_n unto_o we_o let_v we_o employ_v ourselves_o in_o these_o three_o act_n of_o devotion_n first_o it_o will_v well_o become_v a_o soul_n to_o sink_v into_o a_o very_a deep_a humility_n and_o to_o abase_v itself_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o its_o own_o unworthiness_n when_o thou_o see_v that_o christ_n be_v come_v as_o it_o be_v towards_o thy_o house_n run_v forth_o to_o meet_v he_o at_o the_o door_n before_o he_o come_v in_o and_o entertain_v he_o with_o a_o act_n of_o reverence_n worship_n and_o humble_a obeisance_n to_o he_o say_v lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o shall_v come_v under_o my_o roof_n i_o deserve_v not_o the_o crumb_n that_o fall_v from_o thy_o table_n say_v as_o ruth_n to_o boaz_n ruth_n 2.10_o after_o she_o have_v bow_v herself_o to_o the_o ground_n why_o have_v i_o find_v grace_n in_o thy_o eye_n that_o thou_o shall_v take_v knowledge_n of_o i_o see_v i_o be_o a_o stranger_n how_o come_v it_o that_o my_o lord_n shall_v cast_v his_o eye_n upon_o i_o what_o be_o i_o that_o he_o shall_v visit_v i_o and_o come_v to_o marry_v himself_o unto_o i_o and_o when_o thou_o have_v depress_v thyself_o a_o while_n at_o his_o foot_n then_o second_o rise_v a_o little_a up_o again_o and_o mix_v some_o act_n of_o love_n with_o this_o humility_n think_v of_o the_o infinite_a love_n of_o god_n that_o will_v give_v his_o own_o son_n think_v of_o the_o infinite_a love_n of_o christ_n that_o will_v so_o gracious_o come_v to_o save_v we_o and_o will_v leave_v we_o these_o remembrance_n and_o token_n of_o his_o love_n wish_v that_o thou_o have_v a_o thousand_o heart_n to_o correspond_v with_o so_o great_a a_o love_n say_v within_o thyself_o oh_o lord_n what_o be_o i_o that_o thou_o shall_v command_v i_o for_o to_o love_v thou_o what_o compare_v between_o i_o and_o thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v so_o much_o desire_v to_o make_v i_o a_o visit_n and_o give_v to_o i_o a_o embracement_n whence_o come_v it_o that_o thou_o who_o be_v in_o heaven_n among_o they_o who_o know_v so_o well_o how_o to_o love_v and_o serve_v thou_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o descend_v to_o i_o who_o know_v little_a else_o but_o how_o to_o offend_v thou_o be_v it_o possible_a o_o lord_n that_o thou_o can_v not_o content_v thyself_o to_o be_v without_o i_o do_v thy_o mere_a love_n draw_v thou_o down_o from_o heaven_n for_o my_o sake_n do_v thou_o still_o give_v thyself_o unto_o i_o as_o if_o thou_o can_v never_o be_v i_o enough_o who_o can_v abide_v the_o heat_n of_o this_o love_n who_o can_v feel_v thy_o heart_n and_o not_o be_v burn_v up_o there_o be_v none_o can_v dwell_v in_o such_o flame_n without_o be_v consume_v no_o soul_n that_o can_v abide_v in_o the_o body_n if_o a_o great_a sense_n of_o this_o love_n do_v long_o abide_v we_o must_v therefore_o entreat_v our_o gracious_a lord_n that_o he_o will_v stay_v for_o the_o full_a measure_n of_o our_o love_n till_o he_o have_v make_v we_o able_a to_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o love_v he_o and_o three_o let_v we_o turn_v our_o love_n into_o desire_n let_v we_o beseech_v he_o to_o fill_v we_o with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o to_o dwell_v in_o we_o by_o all_o his_o divine_a grace_n say_v lord_n since_o thou_o be_v please_v to_o come_v and_o offer_v thyself_o unto_o i_o my_o soul_n thirst_v for_o thou_o even_o as_o the_o thirsty_a land_n i_o humble_o stretch_v out_o my_o hand_n unto_o thou_o 143.6_o psal_n 143.6_o i_o open_v my_o mouth_n wide_a that_o thou_o may_v fill_v i_o o_o satisfy_v my_o soul_n with_o thy_o likeness_n o_o let_v i_o taste_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v gracious_a and_o you_o may_v be_v assure_v that_o the_o lord_n love_v a_o soul_n that_o lie_v in_o such_o a_o posture_n ready_a to_o receive_v he_o that_o gasp_n and_o belong_v after_o he_o and_o say_v in_o its_o heart_n who_o have_v i_o in_o heaven_n but_o thou_o 73.25_o psal_n 73.25_o and_o there_o be_v none_o on_o earth_n beside_o thou_o stir_v up_o thy_o appetite_n therefore_o and_o come_v to_o he_o as_o a_o chase_a hart_n to_o the_o stream_n of_o water_n as_o a_o hungry_a man_n unto_o a_o feast_n as_o a_o bride_n unto_o her_o wedding_n a_o thousand_o time_n desire_v labour_v to_o feel_v something_o like_a to_o those_o long_n that_o so_o thou_o may_v taste_v and_o savour_v his_o love_n the_o more_o and_o it_o may_v leave_v a_o sweet_a gust_n and_o relish_v upon_o thy_o soul_n and_o thy_o mouth_n may_v praise_v he_o afterward_o with_o joyful_a lip_n iv_o when_o we_o take_v the_o bread_n into_o our_o hand_n it_o be_v seasonable_a time_n to_o do_v that_o act_n which_o i_o tell_v you_o be_v one_o end_n of_o this_o sacrament_n viz._n commemorate_v and_o show_v forth_o or_o declare_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n unto_o god_n the_o father_n let_v we_o represent_v before_o he_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o atonement_n that_o christ_n have_v make_v let_v we_o commemorate_v the_o pain_n which_o he_o endure_v let_v we_o entreat_v he_o that_o we_o may_v enjoy_v all_o the_o purchase_n of_o his_o blood_n that_o all_o people_n may_v reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o that_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o his_o bloody_a sacrifice_n he_o will_v turn_v away_o all_o his_o anger_n and_o displeasure_n and_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o we_o themistocles_n they_o say_v not_o know_v how_o to_o mitigate_v and_o atone_v the_o wrath_n of_o king_n admetus_n and_o avert_v his_o fury_n from_o he_o snatch_v up_o the_o king_n son_n and_o hold_v he_o up_o in_o his_o arm_n between_o himself_o and_o death_n and_o so_o prevail_v for_o a_o pardon_n and_o quench_v the_o fire_n that_o be_v break_v out_o against_o he_o and_o this_o the_o molossian_n of_o who_o he_o be_v king_n hold_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d themist_n plutarch_n in_o themist_n the_o most_o effectual_a way_n of_o supplication_n and_o which_o of_o all_o other_o can_v not_o be_v resist_v or_o deny_v of_o far_o great_a prevalency_n be_v this_o act_n the_o hold_v up_o as_o it_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o our_o hand_n and_o represent_v to_o the_o father_n the_o break_a body_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o only_o beget_v let_v we_o set_v this_o between_o the_o heat_n of_o god_n anger_n and_o our_o soul_n let_v we_o desire_v he_o will_v have_v regard_n to_o his_o dear_o belove_a and_o the_o lord_n can_v turn_v back_o our_o prayer_n that_o press_v and_o importune_v he_o with_o such_o a_o mighty_a argument_n say_v therefore_o to_o he_o behold_v o_o lord_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o everlasting_a covenant_n behold_v we_o lie_v before_o thou_o the_o lamb_n
that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o thy_o soul_n in_o he_o well_o please_v be_v not_o his_o body_n as_o real_o in_o the_o heaven_n as_o the_o sign_n of_o it_o be_v here_o in_o our_o hand_n hear_v good_a lord_n the_o cry_v of_o his_o wound_n let_v we_o prevail_v with_o thou_o through_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n let_v we_o feel_v yea_o let_v all_o the_o world_n feel_v the_o power_n of_o his_o intercession_n deny_v we_o not_o o_o lord_n see_v we_o bring_v thy_o son_n with_o we_o hear_v thy_o son_n o_o lord_n though_o thou_o will_v not_o hear_v we_o and_o let_v we_o let_v all_o other_o know_v that_o he_o live_v and_o be_v dead_a and_o that_o he_o be_v alive_a for_o evermore_o amen_n and_o second_o it_o be_v a_o seasonable_a time_n to_o profess_v ourselves_o christian_n and_o that_o we_o will_v take_v up_o our_o cross_n and_o follow_v after_o he_o this_o take_n of_o the_o bread_n we_o shall_v look_v upon_o as_o a_o receive_v the_o yoke_n of_o christ_n upon_o our_o neck_n and_o lay_v his_o cross_n upon_o our_o shoulder_n if_o he_o think_v fit_a we_o embrace_v a_o crucify_a jesus_n and_o we_o be_v not_o to_o expect_v to_o live_v in_o pleasure_n unless_o they_o be_v spiritual_a nor_o to_o rejoice_v with_o the_o world_n but_o to_o endure_v affliction_n and_o account_v it_o all_o joy_n when_o we_o fall_v into_o manifold_a temptation_n protest_v therefore_o unto_o he_o that_o thou_o love_v he_o as_o thou_o see_v he_o strip_v and_o naked_a bruise_a and_o wound_v slay_v and_o dead_a and_o that_o thou_o be_v content_v to_o take_v joyful_o the_o spoil_n of_o thy_o good_n to_o be_v please_v with_o pain_n and_o to_o count_v death_n the_o way_n to_o life_n v._o when_o we_o eat_v it_o be_v a_o fit_a season_n to_o put_v forth_o these_o two_o act_n of_o faith_n 1._o let_v we_o express_v our_o hearty_a consent_n that_o christ_n shall_v dwell_v within_o we_o that_o we_o will_v be_v rule_v by_o his_o law_n and_o govern_v by_o his_o spirit_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o alone_a king_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o all_o our_o faculty_n and_o that_o we_o will_v have_v no_o other_o master_n but_o only_o he_o to_o give_v command_n within_o we_o eat_v i_o tell_v you_o be_v a_o foederal_a rite_n and_o therefore_o when_o we_o have_v swallow_v this_o bread_n we_o shall_v think_v that_o we_o have_v surrender_v all_o up_o into_o his_o hand_n and_o put_v he_o into_o full_a power_n over_o our_o soul_n and_o we_o shall_v think_v also_o that_o we_o have_v give_v he_o the_o possession_n of_o our_o soul_n for_o ever_o and_o engage_v never_o to_o change_v our_o master_n for_o eat_v be_v more_o receive_n then_o take_v a_o thing_n with_o our_o hand_n it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o incorporate_n of_o the_o thing_n with_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o body_n and_o make_v it_o a_o part_n of_o ourselves_o that_o it_o may_v last_v as_o long_o as_o we_o so_o shall_v we_o meditate_v that_o we_o receive_v the_o lord_n jesus_n never_o to_o be_v separate_v from_o his_o service_n for_o ever_o to_o adhere_v unto_o he_o as_o our_o prince_n and_o captain_n as_o our_o head_n and_o husband_n wheresoever_o his_o command_n will_v lead_v we_o and_o as_o we_o open_v our_o heart_n thus_o to_o receive_v he_o so_o let_v we_o now_o fold_v he_o in_o our_o arm_n and_o embrace_v he_o with_o a_o most_o cordial_a affection_n let_v the_o fire_n burn_v now_o and_o make_v we_o boil_v up_o yea_o even_o run_v over_o with_o love_n to_o he_o now_o be_v the_o time_n not_o only_o to_o give_v ourselves_o to_o he_o but_o to_o make_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o ourselves_o as_o a_o whole_a burnt-offering_a unto_o god_n now_o shall_v we_o lay_v ourselves_o on_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v offer_v up_o entire_o to_o he_o who_o make_v his_o soul_n a_o offering_n for_o sin_n that_o there_o may_v not_o only_o be_v a_o representative_a but_o a_o real_a sacrifice_n at_o this_o feast_n unto_o heaven_n i.e._n that_o we_o may_v not_o only_o show_v forth_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n and_o represent_v it_o before_o god_n but_o we_o ourselves_o may_v offer_v up_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n unto_o he_o and_o send_v they_o up_o in_o flame_n of_o love_n as_o so_o many_o holocau_v to_o be_v consume_v and_o spend_v in_o the_o service_n of_o our_o god_n then_o let_v we_o wish_v for_o the_o flame_n of_o a_o seraphim_n in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n for_o the_o cheerfulness_n and_o speed_n of_o a_o cherubin_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o angel_n that_o we_o may_v sing_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n let_v we_o like_o our_o choice_n so_o well_o and_o think_v that_o we_o be_v so_o behold_v to_o he_o that_o we_o may_v give_v ourselves_o to_o he_o as_o to_o begin_v to_o leap_v for_o joy_n that_o we_o have_v part_v with_o ourselves_o and_o be_v become_v he_o and_o as_o a_o token_n that_o we_o give_v ourselves_o and_o all_o we_o have_v to_o god_n we_o shall_v now_o think_v upon_o those_o offering_n we_o intend_v to_o make_v for_o the_o poor_a member_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o desire_v the_o lord_n to_o accept_v of_o our_o gift_n which_o we_o present_v he_o withal_o as_o earnest_n of_o ourselves_o which_o we_o have_v consecrate_v unto_o he_o and_o perhaps_o now_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v stir_v with_o so_o great_a compassion_n and_o our_o bowel_n may_v be_v so_o feel_o move_v that_o our_o charity_n may_v overflow_v the_o bank_n that_o we_o have_v set_v it_o and_o the_o fire_n that_o be_v within_o we_o may_v require_v a_o fat_a and_o large_a offering_n than_o we_o design_v but_o howsoever_o we_o can_v but_o deal_v our_o bread_n to_o the_o hungry_a with_o a_o more_o cheerful_a hand_n and_o give_v our_o alm_n with_o a_o free_a heart_n when_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n into_o our_o hand_n and_o heart_n and_o feel_v what_o the_o huge_a charity_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v towards_o we_o most_o miserable_a and_o wretched_a creature_n 2._o a_o second_o act_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o shall_v now_o exercise_v be_v this_o let_v we_o real_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n be_v make_v over_o to_o we_o by_o this_o give_v and_o receive_v of_o his_o sacred_a body_n let_v thy_o soul_n say_v my_o belove_a be_v i_o as_o i_o be_o he_o be_v confident_a and_o well_o assure_v that_o if_o thou_o be_v hearty_a in_o the_o former_a act_n of_o say_v thou_o shall_v as_o certain_o receive_v pardon_n and_o grace_n and_o strength_n and_o salvation_n as_o thy_o mouth_n thou_o be_v sure_o eat_v the_o holy_a bread_n the_o former_a act_n be_v a_o receive_v he_o as_o our_o lord_n and_o this_o as_o our_o saviour_n think_v therefore_o that_o now_o christ_n dwell_v in_o thou_o and_o thou_o in_o he_o that_o as_o he_o must_v be_v master_n of_o the_o house_n so_o thou_o shall_v partake_v of_o all_o his_o riches_n of_o all_o his_o honour_n and_o pleasure_n and_o so_o begin_v to_o ransack_v his_o treasure_n desire_v he_o to_o spread_v before_o thou_o his_o inestimable_a riches_n pray_v he_o to_o show_v thou_o if_o it_o be_v but_o a_o little_a glimpse_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o what_o joy_n will_v this_o create_v in_o thy_o soul_n when_o thou_o think_v that_o thou_o and_o christ_n be_v one_o that_o thou_o be_v unite_v to_o his_o most_o precious_a body_n and_o shall_v certain_o receive_v all_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n o_o what_o ravishment_n shall_v it_o be_v unto_o we_o to_o believe_v that_o sin_n shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o we_o that_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o unrighteousness_n that_o the_o flame_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o touch_v we_o that_o death_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o victory_n that_o the_o grave_n be_v bury_v in_o the_o wound_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o we_o be_v seal_v with_o the_o mark_n of_o god_n and_o consign_v to_o a_o bless_a immortality_n and_o shall_v inherit_v the_o joy_n of_o our_o lord_n with_o what_o boldness_n now_o may_v we_o renew_v our_o request_n to_o he_o and_o importunate_o plead_v with_o he_o for_o a_o supply_n of_o all_o our_o want_n we_o may_v put_v up_o strong_a cry_n now_o that_o we_o conceive_v he_o be_v in_o we_o and_o entreat_v he_o since_o it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n to_o be_v so_o familiar_a with_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o god_n o_o my_o lord_n may_z a_o soul_n say_v if_o thou_o love_v i_o so_o much_o fulfil_v in_o i_o all_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o thy_o goodness_n 1.11_o 2_o thes_n 1.11_o and_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n
take_v away_o but_o one_o offence_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o mere_o against_o a_o carnal_a commandment_n yet_o this_o though_o but_o one_o can_v take_v away_o all_o offence_n even_o against_o the_o eternal_a law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n under_o the_o law_n continue_v no_o long_o than_o just_a while_o it_o be_v offer_v but_o be_v to_o be_v repeat_v again_o in_o case_n of_o a_o new_a offence_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n endure_v for_o ever_o 10.14_o heb_fw-mi 10.14_o and_o by_o one_o offering_n he_o have_v perfect_v for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v we_o that_o live_v at_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n distance_n from_o that_o sacrifice_n may_v be_v as_o much_o expiate_v and_o receive_v as_o great_a benefit_n by_o it_o as_o they_o that_o see_v he_o upon_o the_o altar_n or_o as_o he_o that_o put_v his_o finger_n into_o his_o wound_n and_o thrust_v his_o hand_n into_o his_o side_n for_o the_o lord_n lay_v on_o he_o the_o iniquity_n of_o we_o all_o and_o he_o bear_v the_o sin_n not_o only_o of_o that_o generation_n but_o of_o all_o succeed_a age_n think_v then_o now_o that_o the_o cup_n be_v in_o thy_o hand_n now_o that_o thou_o drink_v of_o his_o blood_n that_o thou_o may_v receive_v as_o real_a effect_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n as_o if_o thou_o have_v be_v permit_v to_o have_v lay_v thy_o hand_n on_o his_o head_n and_o put_v all_o thy_o sin_n upon_o he_o as_o aaron_z do_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v offer_v for_o the_o congregation_n of_o israel_n and_o so_o let_v thy_o thought_n slide_v to_o a_o second_o meditation_n which_o be_v hereon_o depend_v 2._o and_o consider_v with_o thyself_o how_o firm_a that_o covenant_n be_v which_o be_v make_v with_o we_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n and_o how_o certain_o god_n will_v perform_v whatsoever_o his_o son_n have_v promise_v it_o be_v call_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o everlasting_a covenant_n 13.20_o heb._n 13.20_o which_o do_v intimate_v that_o he_o seal_v the_o covenant_n with_o his_o blood_n that_o he_o die_v to_o assert_v the_o truth_n of_o all_o that_o he_o say_v he_o take_v it_o upon_o his_o death_n that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o god_n and_o as_o he_o seal_v to_o it_o by_o his_o death_n so_o god_n do_v seal_v to_o it_o by_o his_o resurrection_n which_o two_o put_v together_o be_v the_o grand_a proof_n which_o we_o have_v to_o show_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o then_o we_o may_v be_v confident_a that_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n endure_v for_o ever_o for_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v everlasting_a and_o never_o fail_v the_o first_o covenant_n be_v make_v by_o blood_n as_o you_o may_v see_v exod._a 24.7_o 8._o yea_o there_o be_v such_o a_o affinity_n between_o these_o word_n sanctio_fw-la and_o sanguis_fw-la that_o in_o all_o likelihood_n their_o nearness_n arise_v from_o hence_o because_o by_o blood_n all_o establishment_n and_o sanction_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v make_v but_o the_o blood_n of_o that_o covenant_n vanish_v away_o and_o never_o rise_v again_o and_o so_o in_o time_n do_v the_o covenant_n itself_o as_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o heb._n 8.13_o and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n seal_v the_o new_a compact_n by_o a_o better_a blood_n which_o be_v quicken_v again_o to_o a_o eternal_a life_n to_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o mercy_n of_o it_o shall_v never_o cease_v here_o therefore_o thy_o soul_n may_v again_o plead_v with_o god_n that_o he_o will_v put_v his_o law_n into_o thy_o heart_n and_o write_v they_o in_o thy_o mind_n and_o that_o thy_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n he_o will_v remember_v no_o more_o which_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o covenant_n as_o it_o there_o follow_v in_o the_o apostle_n discourse_n heb._n 10.16_o 17._o thou_o may_v grow_v confident_a and_o rejoice_v in_o god_n thy_o salvation_n thou_o may_v desire_v he_o to_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v the_o precious_a blood_n of_o his_o son_n which_o thou_o remember_v thou_o may_v tell_v he_o that_o be_v not_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n that_o thou_o plead_v but_o of_o jesus_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n without_o spot_n and_o blemish_n thou_o may_v ask_v he_o if_o he_o do_v not_o see_v that_o blood_n in_o the_o heaven_n if_o he_o be_v not_o more_o please_v with_o it_o than_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o cattle_n upon_o a_o thousand_o hill_n say_v lord_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n dead_a do_v it_o not_o cry_v as_o loud_o in_o thy_o ear_n as_o ever_o have_v thou_o not_o make_v he_o a_o priest_n after_o the_o power_n of_o a_o endless_a life_n yea_o have_v thou_o not_o swear_v and_o be_v it_o not_o impossible_a that_o thou_o shall_v repent_v then_o i_o humble_o crave_v that_o a_o poor_a sinner_n which_o have_v nothing_o to_o offer_v thou_o may_v be_v accept_v by_o that_o offering_n then_o let_v i_o live_v by_o his_o life_n as_o so_o many_o already_o have_v do_v let_v i_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v well_o please_v with_o sinner_n through_o he_o let_v i_o know_v that_o i_o have_v find_v favour_n in_o thy_o eye_n let_v all_o the_o prayer_n that_o i_o have_v now_o make_v be_v gracious_o accept_v remember_v all_o my_o offering_n and_o accept_v of_o my_o sacrifice_n of_o prayer_n and_o praise_n yea_o remember_v his_o blood_n when_o i_o do_v not_o actual_o remember_v it_o and_o when_o i_o be_o silent_a and_o do_v not_o pray_v let_v that_o prevail_v for_o blessing_n upon_o i_o 21._o psalm_n 21._o do_v not_o the_o king_n joy_n in_o thy_o strength_n have_v thou_o not_o give_v he_o his_o heart_n desire_v and_o not_o withhold_v the_o request_n of_o his_o lip_n thou_o have_v set_v a_o crown_n of_o pure_a gold_n upon_o his_o head_n he_o ask_v life_n of_o thou_o and_o thou_o give_v it_o he_o even_o length_n of_o day_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o his_o glory_n be_v great_a in_o thy_o salvation_n honour_n and_o majesty_n have_v thou_o lay_v upon_o he_o for_o thou_o have_v make_v he_o most_o bless_a for_o ever_o thou_o have_v make_v he_o exceed_v glad_a with_o thy_o countenance_n and_o therefore_o since_o he_o live_v let_v we_o live_v also_o since_o thou_o have_v hear_v he_o hear_v we_o also_o for_o his_o sake_n send_v we_o help_v out_o of_o thy_o sanctuary_n and_o strengthen_v we_o out_o of_o zion_n grant_v we_o according_a to_o our_o heart_n and_o fulfil_v all_o our_o petition_n save_o lord_n let_v the_o king_n hear_v we_o when_o we_o call_v 3._o meditate_v likewise_o what_o danger_n there_o be_v in_o not_o stand_v to_o that_o covenant_n that_o be_v here_o confirm_v by_o blood_n between_o god_n and_o we_o they_o use_v when_o they_o make_v covenant_n by_o blood_n to_o cut_v the_o beast_n in_o sunder_o and_o both_o party_n pass_v between_o the_o two_o half_n as_o you_o may_v see_v jer._n 34.18_o 19_o which_o custom_n be_v as_o old_a as_o abraham_n time_n as_o gen._n 15.10_o 17_o 18._o will_v inform_v you_o this_o pass_v of_o both_o party_n between_o the_o part_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v as_o much_o as_o a_o wish_n that_o so_o it_o may_v befall_v he_o that_o shall_v break_v the_o covenant_n which_o be_v make_v between_o they_o now_o when_o we_o behold_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n pour_v out_o and_o his_o body_n break_v and_o so_o a_o covenant_n strike_v between_o god_n and_o we_o by_o his_o receive_v he_o into_o heaven_n and_o our_o drink_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o eat_v of_o his_o body_n here_o on_o earth_n we_o shall_v think_v what_o the_o danger_n will_v be_v of_o not_o be_v steadfast_a in_o his_o covenant_n god_n will_v require_v his_o son_n blood_n at_o our_o hand_n the_o lord_n of_o that_o servant_n will_v come_v in_o a_o day_n when_o he_o look_v not_o for_o he_o and_o in_o a_o hour_n that_o he_o be_v not_o aware_a of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o shall_v cut_v he_o in_o sunder_o and_o give_v he_o his_o portion_n with_o the_o hypocrite_n mat._n 24.50_o 51._o i_o have_v often_o think_v that_o he_o allude_v to_o that_o custom_n of_o cut_v the_o beast_n in_o twain_o and_o that_o the_o meaning_n be_v all_o person_n that_o be_v deceitful_a and_o false_a 12.46_o luk._n 12.46_o or_o as_o st._n luke_n phrase_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unbeliever_n unfaithful_a soul_n all_o that_o break_v their_o faith_n with_o christ_n and_o violate_v his_o covenant_n they_o shall_v be_v cut_v in_o two_o as_o the_o word_n signify_v they_o shall_v have_v such_o a_o execution_n do_v upon_o they_o as_o be_v do_v upon_o the_o beast_n of_o old_a and_o receive_v such_o a_o horrible_a doom_n as_o be_v fit_a for_o perjure_a person_n they_o shall_v be_v break_v in_o piece_n as_o his_o son_n be_v break_v yea_o he_o will_v fall_v upon_o they_o as_o
be_v with_o thy_o saviour_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d instead_o of_o thy_o cheese_n thou_o may_v feed_v on_o ambrosia_n and_o instead_o of_o milk_n thou_o may_v drink_v nectar_n with_o the_o god_n who_o will_v long_o for_o the_o world_n any_o more_o that_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v in_o heaven_n who_o will_v not_o be_v unwilling_a to_o go_v his_o earthly_a affair_n any_o more_o who_o have_v once_o converse_v with_o the_o sovereign_a good_a instead_o of_o riches_n he_o be_v get_v a_o eternal_a inheritance_n instead_o of_o friend_n he_o be_v enjoy_v god_n and_o therefore_o if_o it_o be_v not_o fit_v nor_o safe_a to_o return_v present_o to_o our_o secular_a business_n much_o less_o can_v it_o be_v tolerable_a to_o go_v to_o any_o merry_a entertainment_n or_o compotation_n though_o never_o so_o moderate_a and_o innocent_a we_o shall_v not_o so_o soon_o forget_v these_o heavenly_a pleasure_n as_o to_o relish_v these_o that_o be_v earthly_a we_o must_v not_o be_v like_o the_o heathen_a who_o use_v after_o their_o sacrifice_n to_o make_v merry_a all_o day_n and_o drink_v even_o to_o excess_n whence_o some_o long_a ago_o have_v think_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v drink_v take_v its_o name_n from_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o the_o ancient_n use_v to_o drink_v liberal_o after_o their_o sacrifice_n but_o we_o have_v not_o so_o learned_a christ_n we_o must_v make_v the_o savour_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n sit_v long_o upon_o our_o palate_n than_o a_o hour_n and_o not_o wash_v they_o off_o with_o any_o long_a sensual_a delight_n we_o shall_v cry_v out_o again_o and_o again_o 1.2_o cant._n 1.2_o let_v he_o kiss_v i_o with_o the_o kiss_n of_o his_o mouth_n for_o thy_o love_n be_v better_a than_o wine_n we_o shall_v long_o as_o the_o spouse_n do_v to_o have_v such_o taste_v of_o his_o love_n that_o we_o may_v rest_v assure_v of_o his_o good_a affection_n to_o we_o and_o may_v like_v better_o of_o it_o than_o of_o any_o thing_n that_o come_v within_o our_o lip_n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n a●bil_n tatius_n l._n 2._o kiss_n say_v a_o great_a master_n of_o his_o art_n who_o may_v fit_o be_v hear_v in_o this_o case_n be_v the_o seal_n of_o love_n and_o there_o the_o church_n teach_v we_o to_o long_o to_o feel_v such_o sensible_a impression_n of_o his_o love_n upon_o we_o that_o we_o may_v know_v he_o love_v we_o and_o this_o say_v she_o be_v better_a than_o wine_n for_o kiss_n be_v the_o food_n of_o lover_n see_v they_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o love_n and_o as_o he_o say_v of_o his_o leucippe_n lb._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lb._n so_o may_v i_o say_v of_o the_o spouse_n she_o feed_v upon_o the_o mouth_n of_o her_o belove_a and_o eat_v his_o kiss_n i._n e._n desire_v his_o love_n so_o ardent_o that_o it_o make_v she_o forget_v all_o other_o food_n so_o incomparable_a shall_v the_o love_n of_o our_o lord_n seem_v to_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v desire_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o live_v upon_o nothing_o else_o and_o that_o our_o very_a body_n can_v be_v nourish_v and_o feed_v with_o his_o dear_a love_n iii_o three_o if_o we_o communicate_v upon_o the_o lord_n day_n yet_o let_v we_o not_o take_v our_o thought_n off_o from_o this_o action_n but_o spend_v as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v of_o the_o remain_a day_n in_o such_o exercise_n as_o i_o have_v now_o name_v let_v we_o entertain_v with_o the_o best_a cheer_n we_o be_v able_a to_o make_v our_o new_a and_o belove_a guest_n let_v we_o commend_v his_o beauty_n and_o praise_v he_o for_o his_o kindness_n and_o extol_v his_o riches_n and_o protest_v unto_o he_o how_o much_o we_o love_v he_o and_o crave_v he_o pardon_v for_o our_o folly_n and_o desire_v he_o not_o to_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o dark_a and_o nasty_a hole_n into_o which_o we_o have_v bring_v he_o and_o entreat_v he_o of_o all_o love_n that_o he_o will_v not_o take_v exception_n at_o his_o poor_a entertainment_n and_o labour_n to_o charm_v he_o as_o it_o be_v to_o stay_v with_o we_o by_o all_o the_o song_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n that_o we_o can_v devise_v for_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o exercise_n more_o meet_a upon_o the_o lord_n day_n than_o that_o of_o give_v thanks_o and_o sing_v psalm_n of_o praise_n to_o god_n for_o all_o his_o goodness_n to_o we_o as_o we_o be_v his_o creature_n and_o as_o we_o be_v christian_n the_o day_n itself_o be_v a_o type_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o eternal_a rest_n and_o therefore_o our_o work_n in_o it_o shall_v better_o accord_v with_o what_o be_v do_v in_o heaven_n where_o they_o at_o every_o thought_n indite_v a_o psalm_n and_o at_o every_o breath_n they_o chant_v it_o forth_o and_o never_o cease_v day_n nor_o night_n from_o blessing_n god_n and_o so_o justin_n martyr_n tell_v trypho_n the_o jew_n that_o they_o use_v to_o thank_v god_n on_o their_o holy_a time_n for_o have_v make_v the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n in_o it_o for_o the_o use_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o his_o second_o apology_n he_o justify_v the_o christian_n against_o the_o heathen_a from_o this_o thing_n that_o they_o consume_v not_o god_n creature_n with_o fire_n in_o sacrifice_n but_o receive_v they_o with_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n for_o be_v boin_n for_o all_o mean_n of_o health_n all_o kind_n of_o quality_n and_o change_n of_o season_n and_o such_o like_a mercy_n which_o we_o shall_v imitate_v not_o only_o at_o the_o eucharist_n but_o afterward_o when_o we_o may_v more_o large_o think_v how_o much_o we_o be_v behold_v to_o he_o for_o his_o goodness_n let_v we_o say_v o_o my_o lord_n i_o have_v be_v praise_v of_o thou_o but_o alas_o i_o have_v not_o praise_v thou_o enough_o and_o therefore_o i_o can_v cease_v to_o praise_v thou_o the_o bird_n that_o chirp_v in_o the_o air_n will_v shame_v i_o if_o i_o shall_v not_o still_o praise_v thou_o for_o how_o long_o do_v they_o sing_v for_o a_o sip_n or_o two_o of_o water_n or_o for_o a_o dinner_n upon_o half_a a_o worm_n and_o for_o a_o little_a house_n within_o a_o bush_n shall_v not_o i_o then_o persist_v in_o blessing_n of_o thou_o for_o the_o viand_n of_o heaven_n for_o a_o feast_n on_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o thy_o son_n for_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o own_o house_n for_o a_o long_a health_n for_o a_o pleasant_a dwell_n for_o a_o plentiful_a table_n for_o a_o world_n of_o creature_n that_o minister_v every_o day_n unto_o i_o better_a be_v it_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v turn_v into_o one_o of_o those_o little_a cheerful_a creature_n and_o that_o i_o shall_v take_v my_o dwell_n in_o a_o hedge_n than_o that_o i_o shall_v not_o have_v a_o heart_n to_o bless_v thou_o as_o long_o as_o i_o live_v and_o sing_v praise_n to_o thou_o as_o long_o as_o i_o have_v my_o be_v awake_v awake_a o_o my_o sleepy_a soul_n and_o let_v this_o day_n be_v more_o than_o a_o shadow_n of_o heaven_n yea_o one_o day_n be_v too_o short_a let_v every_o day_n have_v something_o of_o this_o in_o it_o and_o be_v a_o good_a day_n unto_o thou_o and_o then_o shall_v eternity_n be_v joyful_a and_o the_o everlasting_a day_n shall_v give_v thou_o light_v long_o enough_o to_o perfect_v his_o praise_n iu_o four_o as_o we_o shall_v spend_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o the_o after-part_n of_o the_o day_n in_o such_o act_n of_o praise_n so_o let_v some_o of_o it_o be_v spend_v in_o a_o after-examination_n let_v we_o make_v some_o solemn_a reflection_n upon_o our_o behaviour_n when_o we_o be_v before_o the_o lord_n and_o if_o we_o find_v our_o mind_n not_o to_o have_v be_v so_o serious_o intend_v and_o our_o heart_n not_o so_o deep_o affect_v as_o we_o do_v desire_v we_o may_v cast_v down_o ourselves_o humble_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o beg_v a_o pardon_n of_o our_o sweet_a and_o love_a saviour_n and_o earnest_o importune_v he_o that_o he_o will_v help_v we_o now_o by_o a_o after-act_n that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o do_v that_o which_o we_o shall_v have_v do_v before_o or_o else_o we_o may_v be_v excite_v to_o rejoice_v the_o more_o in_o his_o goodness_n and_o to_o bless_v he_o for_o the_o refreshment_n he_o have_v afford_v we_o and_o to_o render_v he_o more_o hearty_a thanks_o that_o he_o have_v satisfy_v we_o so_o abundant_o with_o the_o fatness_n of_o his_o house_n and_o make_v we_o to_o drink_v of_o the_o river_n of_o his_o pleasure_n but_o this_o examination_n of_o ourselves_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o we_o shall_v exercise_v every_o day_n and_o be_v practise_v even_o by_o heathen_n before_o they_o go_v to_o bed_n i_o shall_v spare_v all_o further_a discourse_n about_o it_o v._n five_o let_v we_o
tatius_n mention_n that_o appear_v to_o the_o sight_n as_o if_o they_o be_v on_o a_o flame_n and_o the_o fire_n leap_v out_o of_o they_o continual_o but_o if_o you_o come_v to_o touch_v they_o they_o be_v as_o cold_a as_o any_o snow_n and_o neither_o the_o fire_n say_v he_o be_v quench_v by_o the_o water_n nor_o the_o water_n heat_v by_o the_o fire_n but_o in_o that_o fountain_n you_o may_v behold_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o amity_n and_o reconciliation_n of_o fire_n and_o water_n together_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d l._n 2_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d just_o so_o it_o be_v with_o many_o profess_v people_n they_o have_v a_o seem_a zeal_n and_o a_o flagrant_a devotion_n they_o have_v warm_a expression_n in_o their_o mouth_n and_o pray_v earnest_o but_o if_o you_o come_v near_o to_o they_o and_o handle_v they_o if_o you_o grow_v acquaint_v with_o their_o converse_n the_o world_n lie_v cold_a at_o their_o heart_n and_o there_o be_v no_o life_n of_o god_n in_o they_o but_o they_o have_v make_v a_o syncretism_n between_o life_n and_o death_n a_o league_n between_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n and_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n the_o same_o author_n tell_v of_o a_o river_n in_o spain_n lb._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lb._n into_o who_o whirlpit_n if_o the_o wind_n insinuate_v itself_o it_o strike_v upon_o the_o fold_n of_o the_o water_n and_o play_v with_o they_o as_o we_o do_v upon_o the_o string_n of_o a_o cittern_n so_o that_o a_o passenger_n will_v imagine_v that_o he_o be_v entertain_v by_o some_o musician_n which_o may_v apt_o resemble_v many_o man_n in_o the_o world_n who_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n breathe_v at_o some_o solemn_a time_n upon_o they_o or_o when_o they_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n and_o look_v a_o little_a into_o themselves_o do_v seem_v to_o be_v delightful_o move_v and_o to_o make_v a_o pleasant_a noise_n as_o though_o they_o be_v tune_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n but_o follow_v they_o home_o and_o let_v that_o sweet_a breath_n be_v over_o and_o you_o shall_v see_v they_o be_v as_o greedy_a of_o the_o world_n as_o a_o deep_a pit_n and_o their_o thought_n roll_v and_o turn_v about_o that_o they_o may_v draw_v all_o that_o come_v near_o they_o into_o themselves_o vi_o and_o therefore_o sixthly_a let_v we_o labour_n to_o impress_v and_o retain_v a_o image_n of_o christ_n upon_o our_o soul_n who_o we_o have_v see_v crucify_v before_o our_o eye_n let_v we_o represent_v unto_o ourselves_o what_o a_o person_n christ_n be_v and_o what_o his_o manner_n of_o behaviour_n be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o then_o let_v we_o labour_n to_o carry_v he_o before_o our_o mind_n and_o have_v he_o in_o our_o eye_n that_o so_o by_o look_v on_o he_o we_o may_v shape_v all_o our_o affection_n and_o all_o our_o action_n after_o that_o rare_a pattern_n that_o he_o have_v set_v we_o let_v we_o endeavour_v to_o think_v every_o where_o that_o we_o see_v he_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o behold_v he_o bleed_v for_o our_o sin_n or_o declare_v to_o we_o his_o mind_n or_o do_v something_o that_o the_o gospel_n speak_v of_o so_o that_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o mortify_a life_n and_o be_v in_o every_o thing_n fashion_v after_o his_o likeness_n and_o this_o we_o must_v do_v the_o rather_o because_o as_o i_o have_v say_v he_o be_v now_o more_o near_o unite_v unto_o we_o so_o that_o when_o we_o be_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n we_o must_v act_v like_o he_o we_o must_v consider_v how_o he_o do_v or_o what_o he_o will_v do_v in_o such_o a_o case_n and_o we_o must_v so_o behave_v ourselves_o that_o in_o a_o very_a proper_a sense_n christ_n may_v be_v say_v to_o live_v and_o not_o we_o 2.20_o gal._n 2.20_o we_o must_v do_v our_o endeavour_n that_o he_o may_v eat_v and_o drink_v and_o buy_v and_o sell_v etc._n etc._n i._n e._n all_o these_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v as_o we_o think_v that_o christ_n will_v do_v they_o be_v he_o in_o the_o flesh_n who_o be_v one_o with_o we_o we_o must_v become_v so_o many_o little_a image_n of_o he_o in_o the_o world_n that_o they_o who_o see_v we_o may_v behold_v he_o and_o that_o be_v the_o meaning_n i_o suppose_v of_o another_o phrase_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o bid_v we_o to_o put_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 13.14_o rom._n 13.14_o i._n e._n to_o be_v so_o transform_v into_o he_o oecumen_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d oecumen_fw-la that_o both_o in_o our_o outward_a garb_n and_o deportment_n and_o also_o in_o our_o inward_a feature_n we_o may_v be_v a_o lively_a resemblance_n of_o he_o now_o the_o same_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o as_o many_o as_o be_v baptise_a into_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o christ_n gal._n 3.27_o and_o therefore_o much_o more_o they_o who_o have_v eat_v of_o his_o body_n and_o drink_v of_o his_o blood_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v put_v he_o on_o and_o to_o have_v dress_v their_o soul_n complete_o after_o his_o holy_a image_n id._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d id._n they_o must_v labour_v to_o be_v all_o over_o godly_a and_o to_o have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o his_o phrase_n be_v a_o universal_a virtue_n that_o they_o may_v be_v holy_a as_o he_o be_v holy_a and_o for_o our_o better_a direction_n 1._o let_v we_o labour_n to_o do_v something_o worthy_a of_o the_o expense_n of_o christ_n blood_n and_o to_o think_v what_o manner_n of_o person_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v for_o who_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n die_v and_o who_o be_v wash_v in_o no_o other_o laver_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb._n 2._o something_o answerable_a to_o the_o dear_a love_n of_o the_o great_a god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o to_o consider_v after_o what_o sort_n they_o ought_v to_o live_v to_o who_o god_n have_v give_v so_o rich_a a_o gift_n who_o he_o have_v honour_v not_o only_o to_o be_v his_o son_n but_o to_o have_v his_o dear_a son_n for_o their_o servant_n 3._o something_o that_o may_v correspond_v with_o so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o in_o particular_a we_o shall_v think_v what_o be_v expect_v from_o those_o who_o have_v now_o receive_v a_o great_a strength_n from_o heaven_n strong_a food_n must_v not_o be_v give_v to_o those_o that_o intend_v to_o lead_v a_o sedentary_a life_n and_o have_v not_o much_o work_n to_o do_v a_o plentiful_a nourishment_n overthrow_v their_o health_n instead_o of_o yield_a support_n unto_o their_o spirit_n it_o be_v the_o great_a folly_n to_o come_v for_o this_o divine_a nutriment_n if_o we_o intend_v to_o sit_v still_o or_o to_o go_v but_o a_o slow_a pace_n in_o religion_n as_o if_o we_o be_v new_o come_v out_o of_o the_o sickness_n and_o disease_n of_o sin_n and_o can_v scarce_o stand_v in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n they_o ought_v to_o exercise_v themselves_o in_o all_o godliness_n to_o be_v active_a and_o full_a of_o motion_n who_o feed_v so_o abundant_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v very_o good_a child_n who_o be_v feed_v with_o such_o food_n for_o who_o god_n furnish_v such_o a_o table_n with_o so_o great_a a_o cost_n 4._o we_o must_v labour_v to_o do_v something_o that_o be_v worthy_a of_o a_o soul_n and_o body_n consign_v to_o immortal_a blessedness_n how_o holy_a shall_v they_o be_v who_o expect_v such_o great_a thing_n who_o have_v receive_v such_o pledge_n of_o they_o who_o wait_v for_o the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n to_o change_v these_o vile_a body_n into_o his_o likeness_n o_o do_v not_o unhallow_a and_o desecrate_v that_o thing_n which_o be_v at_o present_a the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o which_o be_v sanctify_v for_o the_o eternal_a mansion_n profane_v not_o that_o body_n and_o soul_n which_o shall_v for_o ever_o live_v with_o god_n be_v already_o become_v his_o habitation_n through_o his_o holy_a spirit_n dwell_v in_o they_o now_o consider_v i_o beseech_v you_o do_v you_o think_v that_o he_o lead_v a_o life_n worthy_a of_o any_o of_o these_o who_o delight_v not_o to_o converse_v with_o god_n who_o pray_v never_o or_o but_o very_o seldom_o exceed_v brief_o and_o as_o if_o he_o be_v freeze_v who_o hear_v sermon_n and_o understand_v they_o not_o or_o else_o forget_v they_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v hear_v who_o grow_v no_o wise_a nor_o better_a than_o he_o be_v many_o year_n ago_o who_o time_n run_v away_o in_o eat_v and_o drink_v sleep_a and_o play_v work_a and_o toil_a as_o if_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n we_o exhort_v they_o unto_o who_o rare_o take_v the_o bible_n or_o a_o good_a book_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o when_o he_o do_v throw_v it_o away_o again_o at_o the_o call_n of_o any_o pleasure_n or_o worldly_a gain_n who_o love_v no_o body_n but_o himself_o and_o be_v
angry_a at_o he_o that_o will_v save_v his_o soul_n do_v we_o eat_v and_o drink_v this_o heavenly_a provision_n and_o then_o rise_v up_o to_o play_v do_v we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o such_o noble_a nourishment_n for_o the_o follow_v of_o our_o trade_n and_o the_o encouragement_n of_o we_o in_o our_o worldly_a business_n o_o consider_v belove_a reader_n that_o look_v on_o these_o line_n that_o a_o honest_a heathen_a will_v do_v better_a thing_n than_o these_o he_o that_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n and_o never_o taste_v of_o this_o heavenly_a food_n will_v be_v ashamed_a of_o such_o a_o life_n philosophy_n which_o they_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o nutriment_n of_o the_o soul_n will_v produce_v far_o more_o excellent_a work_n there_o be_v no_o need_n thou_o shall_v be_v a_o christian_n if_o thou_o have_v no_o more_o noble_a end_n mere_a reason_n will_v breed_v up_o better_a scholar_n and_o therefore_o go_v and_o sit_v with_o the_o deipnosophist_n and_o come_v not_o unto_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n unless_o thou_o intend_v to_o walk_v worthy_a of_o he_o unto_o all_o please_a 1.10_o col._n 1.10_o be_v fruitful_a in_o every_o good_a work_n and_o increase_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n do_v but_o hear_v what_o they_o promise_v themselves_o from_o their_o philosophy_n 〈◊〉_d hoc_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la philosophia_fw-la mihi_fw-la promittit_fw-la ut_fw-la i_o parem_fw-la deo_fw-la faciat_fw-la epist_n 48._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n l._n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o then_o judge_v to_o what_o it_o be_v fit_a a_o christian_a so_o divine_o nourish_v shall_v aspire_v this_o say_v seneca_n philosophy_n do_v make_v i_o promise_n of_o that_o it_o will_v make_v i_o a_o peer_n with_o god_n this_o be_v that_o say_v cleomedes_n which_o preserve_v the_o demy-god_n that_o be_v within_o we_o from_o be_v shameful_o entreat_v which_o keep_v it_o unmoveable_a and_o unshaken_a which_o give_v it_o the_o better_a of_o all_o pleasure_n and_o pain_n which_o make_v it_o intend_v some_o worthy_a end_n and_o receive_v all_o event_n and_o contingency_n as_o come_v from_o thence_o from_o whence_o itself_o come_v and_o above_o all_o which_o learn_v it_o to_o wait_v for_o the_o come_n of_o death_n with_o a_o cheerful_a mind_n what_o man_n then_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o christian_a that_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n afford_v do_v strive_v to_o make_v himself_o equal_a with_o a_o beast_n that_o base_o use_v his_o noble_a part_n that_o be_v like_o a_o feather_n shake_v with_o the_o wind_n and_o lie_v down_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o every_o pleasure_n and_o can_v sustain_v the_o load_n of_o the_o least_o grief_n that_o vex_v and_o fret_v at_o every_o cross_n as_o if_o the_o devil_n rule_v the_o world_n and_o tremble_v at_o death_n as_o a_o child_n do_v at_o a_o friend_n with_o a_o vizard_n on_o god_n expect_v sure_a that_o we_o shall_v be_v man_n of_o another_o sort_n and_o that_o philosophy_n shall_v not_o beget_v more_o lusty_a soul_n than_o christianity_n can_v we_o must_v be_v ashamed_a to_o live_v at_o a_o low_a rate_n than_o a_o man_n that_o have_v be_v but_o at_o plato_n compotation_n and_o we_o must_v make_v account_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o nourish_v better_a spirit_n in_o we_o than_o the_o very_a soul_n and_o spirit_n of_o reason_n if_o we_o can_v suck_v it_o in_o can_v be_v able_a to_o generate_v let_v we_o look_v therefore_o into_o our_o heart_n daily_o and_o see_v that_o he_o be_v there_o whether_o we_o eat_v or_o drink_v or_o whatsoever_o else_o we_o do_v let_v we_o ask_v he_o if_o he_o be_v please_v let_v we_o go_v to_o he_o constant_o that_o he_o may_v know_v we_o love_v he_o and_o let_v we_o entreat_v he_o to_o tell_v we_o what_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o do_v and_o then_o let_v we_o do_v it_o with_o all_o our_o might_n vii_o seven_o let_v we_o maintain_v a_o longing_n in_o our_o soul_n after_o another_o such_o repast_n let_v we_o strive_v every_o day_n to_o keep_v up_o a_o spiritual_a hunger_n after_o this_o food_n that_o so_o we_o may_v not_o neglect_v the_o next_o opportunity_n which_o god_n shall_v give_v we_o of_o communion_n or_o if_o we_o shall_v die_v before_o we_o have_v one_o yet_o heaven_n may_v find_v we_o prepare_v for_o the_o feast_n where_o the_o marriage_n shall_v be_v complete_v christ_n may_v find_v such_o holy_a long_n after_o he_o that_o our_o soul_n may_v be_v take_v into_o his_o bosom_n to_o dwell_v in_o he_o as_o he_o before_o dwell_v in_o we_o when_o we_o can_v outward_o communicate_v yet_o we_o may_v in_o heart_n in_o spirit_n though_o we_o can_v always_o celebrate_v the_o mystery_n yet_o we_o may_v have_v the_o thing_n signify_v in_o those_o mystery_n as_o st._n bernard_n speak_v at_o all_o time_n in_o all_o place_n i_o e._n we_o may_v with_o pious_a affection_n and_o holy_a action_n receive_v christ_n continual_o into_o our_o soul_n as_o the_o sacrament_n say_v he_o sine_fw-la re_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la without_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v death_n to_o the_o unworthy_a so_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o res_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la the_o thing_n itself_o without_o the_o sacrament_n will_v be_v life_n eternal_a to_o the_o worthy_a whensoever_o in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n thou_o be_v pious_o and_o devout_o affect_v into_o a_o imitation_n of_o christ_n thou_o do_v eat_v his_o body_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n but_o then_o if_o we_o do_v constant_o preserve_v such_o long_n and_o hunger_a after_o this_o feast_n and_o do_v at_o all_o time_n feast_v upon_o he_o we_o can_v pass_v by_o any_o occasion_n that_o god_n afford_v we_o of_o receive_v he_o in_o that_o manner_n that_o he_o have_v appoint_v and_o bless_v and_o we_o can_v but_o be_v very_o forward_o to_o go_v to_o remember_v he_o when_o opportunity_n be_v present_v in_o the_o assembly_n of_o his_o people_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v not_o make_v it_o a_o distinct_a advice_n that_o you_o will_v come_v again_o when_o this_o table_n be_v spread_v for_o you_o for_o this_o be_v but_o a_o just_a gratitude_n to_o god_n a_o sign_n that_o we_o like_v his_o fare_n and_o be_v well_o please_v with_o his_o cheer_n and_o be_v ambitious_a of_o nothing_o more_o than_o such_o a_o entertainment_n and_o i_o think_v we_o shall_v show_v ourselves_o to_o have_v be_v very_o unworthy_a guest_n at_o the_o last_o feast_n if_o we_o like_v it_o so_o little_a as_o to_o refuse_v to_o come_v the_o next_o time_n that_o we_o be_v invite_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o religion_n they_o receive_v every_o day_n act_v 2.46_o which_o proceed_v from_o a_o great_a devotion_n and_o fervency_n of_o spirit_n when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n like_o fire_n have_v descend_v upon_o they_o and_o this_o heat_n do_v not_o abate_v in_o all_o place_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 400_o year_n but_o in_o some_o church_n of_o africa_n as_o st._n augustine_n write_v and_o in_o rome_n and_o spain_n as_o st._n hierome_n tell_v we_o they_o retain_v this_o ardent_a love_n and_o continual_o remember_v the_o die_a of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o it_o be_v propose_v to_o st._n augustine_n as_o a_o doubt_n whether_o a_o person_n of_o business_n as_o a_o merchant_n husbandman_n or_o the_o like_a shall_v every_o day_n communicate_v to_o which_o he_o answer_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n every_o day_n i_o neither_o praise_v nor_o reprove_v but_o to_o communicate_v every_o lordsday_n i_o will_v wish_v you_o and_o exhort_v every_o one_o so_o to_o do_v and_o so_o st._n chrysostome_n exhort_v of_o the_o people_n to_o build_v church_n in_o the_o village_n where_o they_o may_v hold_v assembly_n he_o persuade_v they_o by_o this_o argument_n sau._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o cap._n 8._o act._n p._n 716_o edit_n sau._n there_o prayer_n will_v be_v send_v up_o daily_o for_o every_o one_o of_o you_o there_o god_n will_v be_v continual_o praise_v with_o hymn_n and_o every_o lord_n day_n will_v there_o be_v a_o offer_v make_v for_o you_o and_o though_o the_o devotion_n of_o christian_n fall_v from_o once_o in_o a_o day_n to_o once_o in_o a_o week_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o once_o in_o a_o month_n till_o at_o last_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v think_v it_o fit_a to_o bind_v man_n of_o necessity_n but_o to_o once_o in_o a_o year_n yet_o i_o find_v a_o devout_a papist_n thus_o speak_v introd_a fr._n sales_n introd_a though_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o say_v how_o often_o a_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o communicate_v yet_o i_o think_v i_o may_v bold_o affirm_v that_o the_o great_a distance_n between_o the_o time_n of_o communicate_v among_o such_o as_o desire_v to_o serve_v god_n devout_o be_v from_o month_n to_o month_n and_o sure_o the_o strict_a observance_n
of_o the_o divine_a commandment_n which_o be_v among_o the_o primitive_a saint_n their_o despise_n of_o all_o worldly_a thing_n their_o great_a charity_n and_o love_n may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v flow_v in_o great_a part_n from_o this_o spring_n that_o they_o receive_v so_o frequent_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n hence_o we_o may_v derive_v their_o strength_n activeness_n and_o zeal_n because_o they_o be_v so_o often_o refresh_v with_o this_o wine_n this_o give_v they_o boldness_n against_o their_o adversary_n this_o make_v they_o run_v so_o forward_o into_o flame_n because_o they_o be_v constant_o heat_v with_o divine_a fire_n from_o this_o table_n they_o go_v away_o with_o the_o courage_n of_o lion_n and_o be_v terrible_a even_o to_o that_o great_a roar_a lion_n which_o devour_v so_o many_o careless_a soul_n he_o can_v not_o make_v such_o a_o easy_a prey_n of_o they_o as_o he_o do_v of_o we_o because_o they_o do_v daily_o renew_v their_o strength_n by_o this_o food_n and_o become_v as_o bold_a as_o a_o lion_n after_o he_o have_v eat_v flesh_n and_o drunken_a blood_n and_o if_o we_o do_v more_o frequent_o communicate_v it_o will_v be_v a_o mean_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o a_o great_a resemblance_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o i_o last_o press_v who_o you_o know_v overcome_v the_o evil_a one_o and_o tread_v he_o under_o his_o foot_n as_o the_o leveret_n say_v the_o forementioned_a author_n in_o the_o mountain_n of_o helvetia_n become_v all_o white_a because_o they_o neither_o see_v nor_o eat_v any_o thing_n but_o drive_v snow_n so_o by_o often_o adorn_v and_o eat_v beauty_n goodness_n and_o purity_n itself_o in_o this_o divine_a sacrament_n we_o shall_v become_v altogether_o virtuous_a pure_a and_o beautiful_a and_o i_o be_o of_o the_o mind_n of_o another_o excellent_a writer_n taylor_n dr._n j._n taylor_n who_o judge_n it_o very_o probable_a that_o the_o war_n of_o kingdom_n the_o contention_n in_o family_n the_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o law_n suit_n the_o personal_a hatred_n and_o the_o universal_a want_n of_o charity_n which_o have_v make_v the_o world_n so_o miserable_a and_o wicked_a may_v in_o a_o great_a degree_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o neglect_n of_o this_o great_a symbol_n and_o instrument_n of_o charity_n and_o that_o be_v the_o last_o thing_n that_o i_o shall_v commend_v unto_o you_o viii_o eight_o let_v we_o be_v sure_a to_o live_v in_o charity_n with_o our_o brethren_n to_o which_o we_o be_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n engage_v by_o this_o sacrament_n and_o of_o which_o we_o make_v a_o most_o solemn_a profession_n let_v we_o behave_v ourselves_o as_o servant_n in_o the_o same_o family_n as_o son_n of_o the_o same_o father_n as_o those_o who_o have_v eat_v of_o the_o same_o bread_n let_v we_o be_v very_o careful_a that_o we_o do_v not_o cover_v the_o coal_n of_o anger_n and_o contention_n under_o the_o ash_n for_o a_o night_n and_o then_o blow_v they_o up_o again_o the_o next_o morning_n but_o let_v we_o quite_o extinguish_v they_o and_o utter_o put_v they_o out_o let_v not_o your_o jealousy_n your_o hard_a thought_n your_o uncharitable_a and_o rash_a censuring_n your_o difference_n and_o enmity_n ever_o return_v again_o but_o let_v that_o sentence_n run_v in_o your_o mind_n 1_o john_n 4.11_o belove_a if_o god_n so_o love_v we_o we_o ought_v to_o love_v one_o another_o if_o he_o have_v give_v his_o son_n if_o he_o still_o give_v he_o to_o we_o if_o we_o feed_v and_o live_v upon_o he_o then_o let_v we_o love_v as_o brethren_n and_o not_o fall_v out_o in_o our_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_o if_o we_o find_v our_o love_n to_o grow_v sick_a and_o weak_a and_o to_o be_v fall_v to_o decay_v then_o let_v we_o come_v hither_o on_o purpose_n for_o to_o revive_v it_o and_o raise_v it_o up_o again_o if_o the_o lamp_n begin_v to_o burn_v dim_a and_o to_o cast_v a_o very_a weak_a light_n let_v we_o pour_v in_o more_o oil_n that_o it_o may_v not_o go_v out_o if_o our_o love_n begin_v to_o be_v chill_a and_o cold_a let_v we_o put_v this_o fire_n the_o often_o under_v it_o that_o it_o may_v be_v keep_v in_o a_o flame_n for_o assure_v yourselves_o that_o they_o who_o take_v up_o their_o difference_n and_o enmity_n again_o do_v never_o true_o lay_v they_o aside_o they_o do_v but_o mock_v god_n when_o they_o come_v to_o this_o holy_a communion_n with_o a_o pretence_n of_o love_n and_o charity_n their_o heart_n not_o be_v thorough_o resolve_v to_o forget_v all_o in_o jury_n and_o offence_n or_o if_o they_o do_v serious_o labour_v to_o put_v to_o death_n all_o hatred_n one_o great_a reason_n why_o they_o be_v not_o thorough_o mortify_v be_v because_o they_o use_v so_o rare_o this_o powerful_a mean_n of_o suppress_v they_o and_o keep_v they_o in_o their_o grave_n man_n do_v one_o with_o another_o alij_fw-la plutarch_n &_o alij_fw-la as_o the_o thespienses_n with_o marry_a person_n who_o once_o in_o five_o year_n space_n keep_v a_o feast_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o cupid_n honour_n for_o the_o reconcile_n of_o all_o difference_n that_o have_v happen_v between_o man_n and_o wife_n such_o a_o small_a festivity_n do_v man_n make_v of_o this_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n to_o which_o they_o come_v perhaps_o with_o a_o intention_n to_o bury_v all_o difference_n but_o then_o they_o give_v they_o a_o whole_a twelve_o month_n time_n if_o not_o more_o to_o revive_v and_o gather_v strength_n again_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o temper_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v as_o much_o different_a from_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o elder_a time_n as_o heat_n be_v from_o cold_a or_o life_n from_o death_n they_o hold_v such_o frequent_a communion_n that_o their_o love_n be_v so_o flagrant_a as_o to_o make_v they_o die_v for_o one_o another_o and_o we_o hold_v they_o so_o seldom_o that_o the_o heat_n of_o our_o unmortified_a passion_n make_v we_o wound_v and_o kill_v each_o other_o so_o that_o i_o make_v account_n there_o be_v but_o a_o little_a difference_n between_o do_v this_o seldom_o and_o not_o do_v it_o at_o all_o yea_o those_o enmity_n will_v be_v more_o fierce_a and_o untractable_a which_o even_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n have_v not_o quench_v to_o put_v a_o conclusion_n then_o to_o this_o discourse_n let_v i_o advise_v you_o when_o you_o come_v from_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n thus_o to_o meditate_v within_o yourselves_o i_o have_v receive_v fresh_a pledge_n of_o the_o love_n of_o my_o lord_n and_o i_o have_v make_v new_a profession_n of_o my_o own_o what_o now_o do_v the_o lord_n require_v of_o i_o what_o have_v i_o that_o i_o can_v render_v back_o to_o he_o alas_o i_o have_v nothing_o to_o give_v he_o but_o only_o my_o love_n nothing_o but_o my_o love_n do_v i_o say_v oh_o how_o great_a a_o thing_n be_v love_n how_o much_o be_v enclose_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o love_n it_o be_v no_o such_o trifle_n as_o i_o imagine_v love_n bring_v god_n down_o to_o we_o and_o love_n will_v carry_v we_o up_o to_o god_n love_n make_v god_n like_a to_o man_n and_o love_n will_v make_v man_n like_a to_o god_n love_n make_v he_o die_v for_o we_o and_o love_n will_v make_v we_o lay_v down_o our_o life_n for_o the_o brethren_n o_o the_o power_n of_o heavenly_a love_n how_o shall_v i_o get_v thou_o plant_v in_o my_o heart_n who_o can_v bring_v thou_o into_o my_o soul_n but_o only_o love_v love_n beget_v love_n and_o the_o frequent_a meditation_n of_o this_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o son_n will_v inflame_v thy_o heart_n in_o love_n to_o they_o oh_o let_v a_o sense_n of_o this_o love_n lie_v perpetual_o in_o my_o breast_n that_o may_v change_v i_o into_o love_n let_v i_o burn_v and_o languish_v in_o the_o arm_n of_o jesus_n let_v i_o long_o for_o nothing_o but_o he_o let_v he_o be_v all_o my_o talk_n all_o my_o joy_n the_o crown_n of_o my_o delight_n let_v i_o never_o forget_v how_o gracious_a he_o be_v let_v the_o taste_n of_o his_o incomparable_a sweetness_n be_v never_o out_o of_o my_o mouth_n let_v i_o never_o relish_v any_o thing_n but_o what_o have_v some_o savour_n of_o he_o o_o my_o foul_a what_o shall_v we_o wish_v for_o but_o to_o feast_v again_o with_o he_o what_o shall_v we_o desire_v but_o to_o be_v satisfy_v with_o he_o 27.4_o psal_n 27.4_o this_o one_o thing_n have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o will_v i_o seek_v after_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o my_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n to_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o inquire_v in_o his_o temple_n what_o friend_n be_v there_o to_o who_o we_o have_v be_v endear_v that_o we_o can_v forget_v do_v we_o use_v to_o throw_v the_o
afford_v we_o a_o constant_a cheerfulness_n they_o do_v not_o beget_v a_o pleasure_n that_o lie_v only_o upon_o the_o pallate_n but_o they_o be_v the_o more_o please_a when_o they_o be_v descend_v as_o far_o as_o the_o heart_n and_o there_o they_o lie_v the_o foundation_n of_o a_o last_a joy_n by_o turn_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n towards_o christ_n the_o benefit_n of_o this_o food_n be_v not_o like_o a_o blaze_n of_o straw_n that_o warm_v a_o man_n for_o the_o present_a but_o soon_o leave_v he_o cold_a nor_o like_o a_o flash_n of_o lightning_n dart_v through_o the_o soul_n for_o a_o moment_n which_o return_v present_o into_o its_o darkness_n nor_o like_o the_o frisk_a of_o the_o spirit_n in_o our_o body_n after_o a_o draught_n of_o wine_n which_o when_o the_o adventitious_a heat_n be_v over_o fall_v into_o sluggishness_n again_o but_o they_o be_v solid_a and_o substantial_a like_a to_o the_o warmth_n of_o the_o sunbeam_n when_o there_o be_v no_o cloud_n before_o his_o face_n nor_o no_o wind_n to_o sweep_v they_o away_o or_o rather_o like_o the_o pleasure_n of_o eat_a food_n which_o increase_v our_o strength_n and_o fatten_v our_o bone_n and_o cause_v a_o durable_a cheerfulness_n and_o vivacity_n of_o our_o spirit_n for_o bread_n you_o know_v be_v call_v the_o staff_n of_o life_n and_o that_o which_o strengthen_v man_n heart_n as_o wine_n be_v that_o which_o glad_v his_o heart_n and_o cheer_v god_n and_o man._n by_o a_o right_a use_n of_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n all_o the_o faculty_n and_o part_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v nourish_v and_o augment_v the_o understanding_n become_v more_o full_a and_o clear_a in_o its_o perception_n the_o will_n be_v make_v more_o free_a and_o cheerful_a in_o its_o choice_n of_o good_a the_o affection_n more_o heavenly_a and_o divine_a more_o forward_a and_o compliant_a with_o our_o will_n the_o passion_n more_o regular_a and_o orderly_a under_o better_a government_n and_o command_n all_o which_o will_v admit_v of_o a_o large_a discourse_n but_o see_v i_o have_v draw_v this_o tract_n already_o to_o overgreat_a a_o length_n i_o will_v choose_v to_o speak_v and_o that_o but_o brief_o neither_o of_o what_o be_v most_o sensible_a to_o every_o good_a man_n viz._n the_o increase_n of_o these_o three_o great_a grace_n faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n first_o faith_n be_v hereby_o make_v more_o solid_a and_o strong_a whether_o we_o consider_v it_o in_o its_o direct_a or_o reflex_n act_n i_o e._n we_o do_v in_o this_o holy_a feast_n look_v most_o serious_o upon_o the_o proper_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n jesus_n christ_n and_o all_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o do_v profess_v with_o all_o our_o soul_n to_o embrace_v a_o crucify_a saviour_n we_o do_v seal_v to_o this_o truth_n which_o he_o have_v seal_v by_o his_o blood_n we_o make_v a_o most_o solemn_a and_o public_a confession_n of_o what_o we_o believe_v we_o do_v most_o sacred_o protest_v that_o we_o firm_o consent_v to_o live_v according_a to_o it_o and_o obey_v it_o and_o then_o if_o we_o will_v reflect_v and_o turn_v our_o eye_n back_o into_o our_o own_o soul_n and_o believe_v something_o of_o ourselves_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o better_a judgement_n concern_v ourselves_o and_o be_v more_o confirm_v in_o the_o belief_n that_o we_o be_v real_a christian_n see_v after_o serious_a examination_n and_o advice_n with_o ourselves_o we_o find_v that_o we_o hearty_o love_v and_o obey_v christ_n command_n and_o see_v that_o in_o his_o most_o sacred_a presence_n who_o be_v the_o searcher_n of_o the_o heart_n we_o dare_v confident_o avow_v it_o that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n though_o never_o so_o difficult_a which_o we_o know_v to_o be_v his_o will_n but_o we_o be_v resolve_v for_o to_o do_v it_o we_o be_v then_o in_o the_o right_a use_n of_o this_o food_n more_o strengthen_v both_o in_o the_o premise_n and_o also_o in_o the_o conclusion_n as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v make_v this_o syllogism_n or_o reason_n he_o that_o hearty_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o obey_v the_o gospel-commands_a shall_v inherit_v the_o promise_n and_o be_v save_v i_o do_v so_o hearty_o believe_v and_o obey_v therefore_o i_o shall_v be_v save_v all_o these_o three_o proposition_n or_o affirmation_n be_v by_o worthy_a receive_n much_o strengthen_v in_o we_o we_o do_v hearty_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o we_o be_v more_o confirm_v in_o our_o belief_n and_o in_o particular_a of_o this_o that_o he_o who_o do_v believe_v in_o christ_n and_o obey_v he_o shall_v be_v save_v we_o see_v before_o our_o eye_n such_o testimony_n of_o god_n love_n that_o we_o can_v but_o be_v full_a of_o this_o belief_n which_o be_v a_o general_a faith_n and_o contain_v in_o the_o first_o of_o those_o now_o name_v proposition_n we_o do_v likewise_o here_o renew_v our_o consent_n to_o believe_v and_o obey_v our_o lord_n in_o every_o thing_n he_o have_v say_v and_o this_o contain_v the_o second_o proposition_n and_o be_v a_o particular_a special_a act_n of_o faith_n now_o what_o shall_v hinder_v but_o that_o we_o may_v conclude_v most_o strong_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o three_o therefore_o i_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o then_o faith_n be_v manifest_o nourish_v in_o every_o sense_n that_o you_o can_v take_v it_o in_o we_o do_v direct_o put_v forth_o more_o lively_a act_n of_o faith_n as_o that_o imply_v assent_v to_o the_o gospel_n and_o consent_v to_o obey_v it_o and_o why_o shall_v not_o the_o consequent_a be_v that_o we_o may_v reflect_v more_o comfortable_o and_o solid_o upon_o ourselves_o that_o we_o be_v in_o a_o safe_a condition_n and_o that_o we_o may_v continue_v so_o there_o want_v nothing_o but_o that_o we_o be_v diligent_a in_o the_o use_n of_o all_o mean_n of_o which_o this_o be_v one_o to_o confirm_v and_o establish_v our_o faith_n more_o by_o often_o receive_v the_o sacred_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 2._o our_o hope_n be_v here_o also_o nourish_v and_o make_v more_o lively_a and_o indeed_o it_o must_v be_v strengthen_v in_o proportion_n to_o our_o faith_n for_o hope_n arise_v out_o of_o it_o and_o have_v its_o growth_n with_o it_o be_v but_o the_o expectation_n and_o wait_v of_o faith_n because_o i_o believe_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v promise_v in_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o i_o wait_v for_o they_o the_o strong_a therefore_o that_o my_o belief_n and_o obedience_n be_v the_o strong_a will_v my_o hope_n be_v now_o he_o that_o express_v his_o faith_n in_o christ_n at_o this_o sacrament_n and_o believe_v also_o that_o christ_n be_v real_o present_a there_o and_o likewise_o that_o he_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n through_o a_o worthy_a use_n of_o it_o he_o do_v thereby_o get_v a_o great_a reason_n to_o hope_n and_o wait_v for_o the_o other_o appearance_n and_o presence_n of_o christ_n more_o visible_o and_o open_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v divest_v of_o all_o sign_n and_o figure_n and_o shall_v reveal_v himself_o with_o open_a face_n when_o we_o shall_v not_o know_v he_o so_o much_o as_o that_o he_o die_v but_o as_o he_o that_o live_v and_o reign_v and_o triumph_n 3._o our_o love_n hereby_o be_v manifest_o enlarge_v and_o nourish_v partly_o by_o fulfil_v one_o of_o christ_n command_n he_o that_o love_v i_o keep_v my_o commandment_n say_v our_o lord_n and_o this_o be_v one_o of_o they_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o partly_o by_o lay_v new_a fuel_n upon_o the_o fire_n which_o it_o may_v feed_v upon_o new_a consideration_n i_o mean_v and_o experience_n new_a argument_n and_o incentives_n to_o obedience_n and_o partly_o by_o knit_v and_o unite_n of_o we_o in_o a_o more_o cordial_a love_n and_o affection_n to_o all_o our_o brethren_n which_o be_v a_o expression_n of_o love_n to_o he_o for_o he_o have_v say_v 1_o john_n 4.12_o if_o we_o love_v one_o another_o god_n dwell_v in_o we_o and_o his_o love_n be_v perfect_v in_o we_o now_o faith_n hope_n and_o love_n what_o will_v not_o they_o do_v what_o can_v they_o overcome_v all_o the_o craft_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v discover_v all_o his_o power_n be_v break_v all_o his_o temptation_n be_v baffle_v by_o this_o heavenly_a nourishment_n for_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o first_o piece_n of_o the_o devil_n policy_n which_o consist_v in_o magnify_v and_o extol_v the_o advantage_n of_o that_o thing_n to_o which_o he_o will_v tempt_v we_o it_o be_v defeat_v by_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n which_o this_o sacrament_n do_v make_v more_o clear_a and_o shine_a he_o use_v all_o the_o rhetoric_n and_o sophistry_n that_o he_o have_v to_o persuade_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o harmless_a or_o a_o pleasant_a or_o a_o profitable_a or_o a_o credible_a thing_n he_o paint_v sin_n forth_o in_o the_o best_a colour_n and_o provide_v for_o it_o the_o most_o amorous_a dress_n
full_a atonement_n be_v make_v because_o it_o be_v only_a bread_n and_o only_a wine_n these_o thing_n then_o have_v such_o a_o special_a reference_n to_o christ_n death_n the_o worthy_a receive_n of_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v of_o great_a force_n 1._o as_o a_o antidote_n to_o take_v away_o the_o poison_n and_o killing-power_n of_o sin_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n do_v wash_v away_o our_o guilt_n and_o take_v off_o all_o obligation_n unto_o punishment_n and_o the_o consideration_n that_o christ_n have_v die_v for_o we_o expel_v the_o poison_n from_o the_o heart_n which_o will_v make_v we_o faint_a and_o die_v it_o heal_v the_o wound_n that_o sin_n have_v make_v and_o take_v away_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o sore_a it_o assuage_n the_o rage_n and_o heat_n of_o that_o sting_n which_o the_o fiery_a serpent_n have_v send_v unto_o we_o and_o suffer_v not_o the_o venom_n to_o undo_v we_o the_o pardon_n indeed_o be_v grant_v to_o we_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n when_o we_o unfeigned_o repent_v and_o believe_v i._n e._n when_o we_o be_v convert_v unto_o god_n but_o now_o likewise_o it_o be_v further_o seal_v to_o such_o person_n that_o which_o be_v confirm_v before_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v now_o in_o a_o sensible_a manner_n apply_v to_o we_o and_o ratify_v by_o the_o representation_n of_o that_o blood_n in_o the_o use_n of_o these_o thing_n likewise_o we_o receive_v a_o increase_n of_o piety_n and_o get_v more_o full_a victory_n over_o our_o sin_n and_o thereby_o feel_v more_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o antidote_n and_o have_v a_o sense_n of_o our_o pardon_n make_v as_o lively_a as_o if_o there_o be_v a_o new_a act_n of_o grace_n pass_v to_o settle_v it_o more_o sure_o upon_o we_o 2._o it_o be_v of_o a_o cathartical_a virtue_n also_o and_o have_v in_o it_o a_o force_n to_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v our_o soul_n from_o their_o impurity_n as_o it_o take_v away_o the_o killing-power_n of_o sin_n against_o we_o so_o it_o kill_v sin_n in_o we_o by_o our_o abide_n in_o the_o wound_n of_o christ_n sin_n be_v wound_v and_o slay_v if_o any_o of_o you_o say_v st._n bernard_n do_v not_o feel_v so_o frequent_o the_o sharp_a motion_n of_o anger_n envy_n or_o luxury_n &c_n &c_n gratias_fw-la agate_n corpori_fw-la &_o sa●guini_fw-la domini_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v he_o give_v thanks_o to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o let_v he_o praise_v the_o power_n of_o this_o sacrament_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n quench_v the_o fire_n of_o anger_n the_o heartburning_n of_o malice_n and_o envy_n the_o feavourish_a heat_n of_o lust_n the_o rage_a thirst_n after_o sensual_a pleasure_n consider_v what_o thou_o be_v do_v thou_o delight_v in_o drink_n here_o be_v a_o draught_n to_o quench_v thy_o thirst_n be_v thou_o a_o glutton_n here_o be_v a_o morfel_fw-mi that_o will_v make_v thou_o say_v lord_z evermore_o give_v we_o this_o bread_n be_v thou_o worldly-minded_n here_o be_v christ_n die_v to_o the_o world_n and_o leave_v the_o world_n who_o will_v carry_v thou_o away_o with_o he_o in_o his_o arm_n be_v thou_o fearful_a to_o suffer_v any_o thing_n for_o christ_n drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v able_a to_o shed_v thy_o own_o blood_n for_o christ_n cypt._n calicem_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la bibas_fw-la ut_fw-la possis_fw-la propter_fw-la christum_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la sundere_fw-la cypt._n give_v say_v cyprian_n the_o cup_n of_o christ_n to_o those_o who_o be_v to_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o martyrdom_n be_v thou_o afraid_a of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n christ_n o_o man_n come_v here_o to_o take_v possession_n of_o thou_o and_o as_o he_o upon_o the_o cross_n spoil_v principality_n and_o power_n triumph_v over_o they_o so_o may_v thou_o do_v also_o in_o this_o sacrament_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v thou_o afraid_a of_o grow_v cold_a and_o dead_a in_o good_a duty_n thou_o drink_v of_o jesus_n that_o be_v full_a of_o spirit_n and_o will_v warm_v and_o enliven_v thy_o heart_n whatsoever_o sin_n thou_o have_v unmortified_a bring_v it_o hither_o and_o nail_v it_o unto_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n till_o it_o be_v stark_o dead_a and_o unto_o whatsoever_o good_a thou_o will_v be_v animate_v show_v thy_o lord_n thy_o desire_n to_o it_o and_o show_v he_o his_o blood_n to_o move_v he_o to_o bestow_v it_o only_o remember_v that_o it_o work_v not_o as_o physic_n do_v in_o a_o natural_a but_o in_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n it_o work_v as_o a_o sacrament_n and_o require_v thy_o inward_a rational_a and_o spiritual_a operation_n and_o then_o thou_o will_v find_v the_o profit_n of_o it_o to_o be_v great_a than_o all_o that_o i_o have_v say_v some_o of_o the_o old_a heathen_a represent_v plenty_n and_o worldly_a happiness_n by_o a_o man_n with_o bread_n in_o one_o hand_n and_o a_o cup_n in_o the_o other_o and_o a_o crown_n of_o poppy_n about_o his_o head_n which_o signify_v sleep_v and_o emptiness_n of_o care_n and_o trouble_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o abundance_n that_o man_n thou_o may_v be_v for_o by_o this_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v exhibit_v to_o thou_o all_o plenty_n of_o grace_n and_o blessing_n of_o peace_n and_o comfort_n thou_o may_v lay_v down_o thyself_o in_o peace_n and_o sleep_v quiet_o not_o in_o the_o lap_n of_o the_o world_n and_o carnal_a security_n but_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o our_o lord_n folace_v thyself_o in_o his_o love_n and_o say_v thou_o have_v put_v gladness_n in_o my_o heart_n more_o than_o in_o the_o time_n that_o their_o corn_n and_o wine_n increase_v psal_n 4.7_o let_v i_o say_v therefore_o to_o every_o holy_a and_o well-disposed_a soul_n in_o the_o word_n of_o st._n ambrose_n venias_fw-la venias_fw-la ad_fw-la cibum_fw-la christi_fw-la adcibum_fw-la etc._n etc._n come_v come_v to_o the_o food_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o food_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n to_o the_o banquet_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o cup_n wherewith_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v inebriate_v and_o make_v drunken_a that_o thou_o may_v put_v off_o the_o care_n of_o the_o world_n the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n and_o that_o thou_o may_v put_v on_o the_o comfort_n of_o god_n the_o delight_n of_o peace_n the_o joy_n of_o pardon_n more_o sweet_a than_o all_o the_o pleasure_n of_o a_o paradise_n and_o thou_o o_o lord_n our_o god_n who_o do_v provide_v food_n for_o all_o creature_n and_o have_v give_v all_o creature_n to_o be_v food_n for_o man_n and_o feed_v not_o only_o his_o body_n but_o his_o soul_n also_o and_o give_v he_o for_o his_o soul_n not_o only_o the_o holy_a word_n but_o the_o bless_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o thy_o son_n do_v thou_o cause_v all_o our_o heart_n to_o burn_v with_o desire_n after_o thou_o who_o be_v so_o full_a of_o love_n to_o we_o make_v every_o christian_a soul_n to_o relish_v and_o savour_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n prepare_v every_o one_o by_o a_o full_a digestion_n of_o thy_o heavenly_a word_n to_o receive_v likewise_o this_o divine_a nourishment_n of_o their_o soul_n stir_v up_o all_o their_o hunger_n after_o this_o feast_n excite_v all_o their_o longing-appetite_n after_o this_o heavenly_a manna_n and_o let_v this_o be_v the_o voice_n and_o hearty_a language_n of_o every_o one_o that_o read_v this_o book_n give_v we_o good_a lord_n give_v we_o evermore_o this_o food_n amen_n most_o gracious_a god_n for_o jesus_n christ_n his_o sake_n amen_n chap._n xix_o as_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o shower_n make_v those_o plant_n more_o tall_a and_o beautiful_a which_o have_v any_o live_a root_n in_o the_o earth_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_n do_v putrify_v and_o dry_v up_o those_o who_o root_n be_v dead_a so_o it_o be_v with_o this_o sacrament_n which_o render_v their_o soul_n more_o fair_a and_o flourish_v who_o receive_v it_o root_v in_o love_n but_o those_o be_v more_o dry_v and_o harden_v by_o it_o and_o tend_v more_o to_o corruption_n who_o have_v no_o life_n at_o all_o in_o they_o whereby_o to_o convert_v it_o into_o their_o nourishment_n or_o as_o you_o see_v it_o be_v in_o corporal_a nutriment_n those_o meat_n which_o give_v a_o plentiful_a increase_n to_o sound_a body_n do_v more_o weaken_v and_o enfeeble_v those_o who_o stomach_n be_v corrupt_a and_o the_o high_a and_o full_a the_o nutriment_n be_v the_o more_o corruption_n do_v it_o breed_v in_o those_o that_o be_v infirm_a and_o not_o apt_a to_o receive_v it_o so_o it_o be_v in_o this_o sacred_a spiritual_a repast_n the_o great_a and_o more_o large_a stock_n of_o spirit_n and_o strength_n it_o be_v apt_a to_o afford_v to_o a_o soul_n that_o fit_v itself_o to_o receive_v it_o the_o more_o distemper_n and_o weakness_n do_v it_o leave_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o he_o that_o care_v not_o what_o he_o do_v
so_o he_o may_v but_o have_v it_o let_v i_o wish_v therefore_o every_o man_n to_o approve_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o sincere_a christian_a and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n for_o as_o the_o benefit_n be_v great_a if_o we_o use_v it_o aright_o so_o be_v the_o danger_n great_a if_o we_o mind_v not_o what_o we_o do_v presume_v not_o to_o draw_v nigh_o hither_o in_o your_o dirty_a garment_n let_v not_o your_o soul_n stand_v in_o god_n presence_n all_o nasty_a and_o filthy_a lay_v not_o unwashen_v hand_n upon_o his_o table_n and_o let_v not_o your_o foot_n tread_v in_o his_o holy_a place_n unless_o they_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o commandment_n let_v not_o he_o who_o mouth_n be_v full_a of_o curse_v and_o bitterness_n of_o blasphemy_n and_o revile_n of_o corrupt_a and_o rot_a communication_n dare_v to_o put_v this_o bread_n into_o his_o mouth_n let_v not_o he_o that_o sit_v with_o the_o drunkard_n and_o delight_n in_o strong_a drink_n be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o take_v this_o cup_n into_o his_o hand_n let_v not_o the_o covetous_a miser_n that_o hug_v his_o mammon_n be_v so_o fearless_a as_o to_o come_v to_o the_o feast_n of_o charity_n let_v not_o the_o heart_n that_o be_v fill_v with_o wrath_n and_o hatred_n and_o uncharitableness_n presume_v to_o sit_v down_o at_o this_o feast_n of_o love_n let_v not_o that_o hand_n stretch_v forth_o itself_o to_o receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v dip_v in_o blood_n or_o defile_v with_o unlawful_a gain_n let_v every_o man_n that_o work_v iniquity_n and_o life_n in_o the_o neglect_n of_o any-known_a duty_n or_o be_v not_o careful_a to_o know_v it_o fear_n and_o stand_v in_o awe_n and_o keep_v at_o a_o distance_n and_o instant_o fly_v from_o his_o sin_n which_o must_v thus_o make_v he_o avoid_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o society_n of_o the_o faithful_a yea_o let_v not_o the_o most_o holy_a person_n dare_v to_o draw_v near_o to_o god_n in_o this_o duty_n till_o he_o have_v trim_v and_o dress_v up_o his_o soul_n till_o he_o have_v snuff_v his_o lamp_n and_o make_v it_o burn_v more_o clear_o till_o he_o have_v excite_v those_o affection_n in_o his_o heart_n which_o be_v most_o proper_a to_o this_o action_n till_o he_o have_v consider_v what_o he_o be_v about_o to_o do_v and_o have_v put_v himself_o in_o a_o meet_a disposition_n to_o be_v so_o familiar_a with_o god_n for_o 1._o though_o he_o have_v some_o goodness_n in_o he_o that_o come_v unprepared_a to_o the_o lord_n table_n yet_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o the_o apostle_n say_v the_o corinthian_n be_v 29._o 1_o cor._n 11.27_o 29._o who_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n because_o cause_n they_o do_v not_o discern_v the_o lord_n body_n nor_o mind_v for_o what_o end_v they_o do_v communicate_v he_o offer_v a_o great_a disrespect_n to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v guilty_a of_o irreverence_n to_o it_o who_o make_v not_o solemn_a and_o serious_a address_n to_o he_o and_o come_v with_o no_o mote_n purity_n and_o cleanness_n into_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o king_n than_o he_o will_v take_v care_n of_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o ordinary_a man_n he_o make_v as_o if_o christ_n be_v his_o fellow_n and_o that_o a_o man_n may_v come_v as_o rude_o into_o his_o company_n as_o if_o he_o be_v come_v into_o his_o own_o house_n and_o sit_v at_o his_o own_o board_n 2._o a_o good_a man_n that_o eat_v unprepared_o and_o without_o forego_v consideration_n may_v eat_v and_o drink_v damnation_n to_o himself_o 11.29_o 1_o cor._n 11.29_o i._n e._n he_o may_v bring_v upon_o himself_o bodily_a judgement_n when_o he_o mind_v not_o serious_o the_o religious_a end_n of_o this_o eat_n and_o drink_v for_o so_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o believe_a corinthian_n as_o be_v manifest_a from_o v._o 30._o for_o this_o cause_n many_o be_v weak_a and_o other_o sick_a and_o other_o be_v dead_a the_o cause_n he_o speak_v of_o be_v their_o unworthy_a eat_n and_o drink_v i_o e._n their_o maintain_v pride_n and_o contempt_n of_o their_o poor_a brethren_n their_o uncharitableness_n and_o want_n of_o love_n even_o when_o they_o be_v do_v this_o sacred_a action_n this_o cause_v god_n to_o scourge_v they_o and_o inflict_v some_o punishment_n upon_o their_o body_n that_o he_o may_v awaken_v and_o save_v their_o soul_n every_o sin_n may_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o disease_n but_o this_o in_o particular_a be_v note_v as_o the_o author_n of_o those_o disease_n that_o rage_n amongo_fw-la christian_n take_v heed_n then_o how_o thou_o come_v void_a of_o humility_n or_o brotherly_a kindness_n or_o not_o attendingl_v what_o thou_o be_v there_o to_o do_v he_o that_o drink_v thus_o unworthy_o may_v have_v a_o poison_n run_v through_o he_o vein_n the_o wine_n may_v breed_v the_o stone_n in_o his_o kidney_n or_o bladder_n and_o the_o gout_n in_o his_o joint_n a_o ague_n or_o fever_n may_v have_v commission_n to_o invade_v his_o bloudd_n or_o if_o none_o of_o these_o fall_n upon_o he_o it_o may_v bring_v a_o curfe_n upon_o his_o good_n or_o relation_n or_o good_a name_n every_o time_n thou_o receive_v and_o be_v not_o a_o man_n that_o examine_v thyself_o for_o any_o thing_n thou_o can_v tell_v thou_o kille_v a_o child_n or_o beast_n thou_o blaste_v thy_o corn_n or_o call_v for_o worm_n and_o caterpillar_n upon_o thy_o fruit_n and_o if_o we_o go_v on_o and_o will_v not_o amend_v in_o this_o thing_n whereas_o god_n do_v now_o plague_v we_o with_o many_o sickness_n he_o may_v in_o a_o short_a time_n send_v the_o pestilence_n and_o sweep_v we_o away_o with_o the_o bosom_n of_o destruction_n he_o may_v depopulate_v our_o parish_n and_o leave_v but_o a_o few_o concommicant_n 3._o as_o for_o a_o wicked_a profane_a person_n that_o approach_v hither_o with_o some_o slight_a intention_n to_o leave_v his_o sin_n in_o which_o perhaps_o he_o the_o last_o week_n live_v he_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o another_o sense_n he_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o murderer_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n he_o make_v his_o wound_n bleed_v afresh_o and_o he_o pierce_v his_o side_n with_o a_o great_a cruelty_n than_o the_o roman_a soldier_n he_o grieve_v and_o wound_v he_o more_o than_o the_o gem_n that_o wring_v his_o blood_n out_o of_o his_o sacred_a body_n for_o he_o bring_v that_o before_o he_o which_o he_o hate_v more_o than_o he_o do_v death_n more_o than_o the_o nail_n and_o the_o cross_n he_o prick_v he_o with_o that_o which_o be_v sore_a to_o he_o then_o the_o spear_n which_o be_v thrust_v into_o his_o side_n he_o know_v he_o shall_v do_v better_o when_o they_o do_v they_o know_v not_o what_o o_o how_o do_v it_o trouble_v the_o heart_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o see_v man_n lay_v that_o in_o their_o bosom_n and_o cherish_v its_o life_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o death_n yea_o how_o grievous_a must_v it_o be_v unto_o he_o to_o see_v they_o do_v this_o even_o when_o they_o come_v to_o commemorate_v his_o death_n this_o sin_n of_o unworthy_a receive_n do_v strike_v above_o the_o rest_n to_o his_o heart_n see_v all_o his_o pain_n can_v make_v they_o leave_v their_o sin_n it_o be_v as_o if_o a_o child_n shall_v kiss_v the_o bloody_a knife_n which_o kill_v his_o father_n when_o he_o come_v to_o make_v a_o solemn_a declamation_n against_o the_o author_n of_o his_o death_n and_o pretend_v to_o take_v vengeance_n upon_o they_o as_o villain_n for_o such_o a_o unpardonable_a fact_n as_o if_o a_o roman_a shall_v have_v run_v into_o the_o enemy_n camp_n have_v make_v a_o large_a commendation_n of_o that_o act_n of_o decius_n in_o die_v for_o his_o country_n and_o there_o be_v one_o sin_n that_o seem_v more_o manifest_o than_o other_o to_o open_v the_o close_a wound_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v hatred_n and_o enmity_n in_o our_o heart_n which_o i_o doubt_v few_o of_o the_o common_a fort_n be_v free_a of_o he_o that_o come_v with_o his_o heart_n full_a of_o passion_n and_o anger_n and_o rage_n against_o his_o brother_n what_o do_v he_o but_o rend_v and_o tear_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o piece_n he_o separate_v and_o divide_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v one_o part_n of_o it_o from_o another_o and_o in_o a_o most_o formal_a manner_n kill_v he_o afresh_o in_o his_o member_n who_o be_v call_v his_o body_n whosoever_o hate_v his_o brother_n be_v a_o murderer_n whosoever_o divide_v one_o man_n from_o another_o he_o do_v what_o he_o can_v to_o rend_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o destroy_v that_o which_o be_v
as_o dear_a to_o he_o as_o his_o life_n now_o who_o heart_n will_v not_o faint_v and_o swoon_v to_o think_v of_o be_v guilty_a of_o his_o most_o sacred_a blood_n there_o be_v no_o such_o load_n to_o the_o conscience_n as_o to_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n who_o then_o can_v have_v a_o heart_n strong_a enough_o to_o bear_v he_o up_o of_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 4._o and_o that_o be_v the_o four_o thing_n i_o will_v have_v such_o person_n to_o consider_v that_o they_o eat_v and_o drink_v damnation_n to_o themselves_o in_o a_o more_o spiritual_a sense_n than_o the_o corinthian_n do_v that_o be_v they_o make_v themselves_o liable_a not_o only_o to_o the_o plague_n of_o god_n in_o this_o life_n but_o to_o his_o everlasting_a anger_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v you_o have_v see_v already_o that_o in_o this_o sacrament_n we_o make_v a_o solemn_a profession_n of_o ourselves_o to_o be_v christ_n disciple_n we_o vow_v ourselves_o to_o his_o service_n what_o do_v he_o then_o but_o call_v for_o all_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n upon_o his_o head_n who_o take_v no_o care_n to_o keep_v those_o engagement_n we_o here_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o to_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o it_o now_o the_o threaten_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o part_n of_o his_o gospel_n which_o we_o choose_v here_o to_o fall_v under_o if_o we_o do_v not_o obey_v his_o command_n we_o here_o receive_v christ_n who_o be_v represent_v to_o we_o by_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n he_o therefore_o who_o embrace_v he_o with_o a_o dead_a faith_n which_o work_v not_o by_o love_n what_o do_v he_o else_o but_o damn_v himself_o he_o profess_v christ_n as_o solemn_o as_o any_o creature_n can_v do_v but_o he_o live_v not_o according_a to_o he_o his_o own_o faith_n then_o and_o belief_n will_v condemn_v he_o and_o let_v that_o man_n think_v that_o he_o depart_v from_o the_o lord_n table_n expose_v to_o all_o the_o mischief_n in_o the_o world_n that_o can_v fall_v upon_o a_o man_n unprotect_a from_o above_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v depart_v from_o his_o head_n and_o he_o lie_v open_a to_o all_o the_o thunderbolt_n of_o heaven_n and_o beside_o he_o consign_n himself_o over_o to_o eternal_a death_n he_o bind_v himself_o to_o endure_v the_o torment_n of_o hell_n fire_n when_o a_o man_n can_v think_v of_o christ_n of_o his_o death_n of_o his_o love_n and_o yet_o love_v his_o sin_n and_o keep_v the_o traitor_n in_o his_o breast_n it_o will_v at_o last_o prove_v a_o traitor_n to_o he_o and_o hale_v he_o to_o the_o most_o fearful_a execution_n the_o flame_n of_o hell_n will_v be_v the_o hot_a because_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n will_v not_o quench_v they_o the_o anger_n of_o god_n will_v be_v more_o incense_v because_o man_n blow_v it_o up_o by_o their_o sin_n notwithstanding_o the_o stream_n of_o blood_n which_o flow_v from_o the_o side_n of_o his_o son_n to_o slake_v it_o and_o you_o will_v see_v that_o he_o be_v in_o great_a danger_n of_o hell_n fire_n then_o other_o man_n and_o that_o he_o drink_v damnation_n if_o you_o consider_v that_o which_o follow_v 5._o such_o a_o profane_a person_n do_v by_o this_o act_n more_o harden_v his_o heart_n in_o his_o sin_n and_o make_v it_o more_o obdurate_a against_o all_o the_o method_n of_o god_n it_o may_v be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o some_o to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o danger_n of_o damnation_n for_o a_o man_n may_v repent_v and_o though_o he_o do_v not_o now_o leave_v his_o sin_n yet_o hereafter_o he_o may_v be_v out_o of_o love_n with_o it_o but_o this_o imagination_n will_v soon_o fly_v away_o if_o you_o set_v but_o the_o light_n of_o this_o truth_n and_o those_o that_o follow_v against_o it_o that_o a_o man_n heart_n become_v more_o obstinate_a and_o unmalleable_a who_o be_v not_o soften_v by_o christ_n blood_n and_o go_v on_o in_o sin_n though_o he_o then_o perhaps_o entertain_v some_o resolution_n against_o it_o this_o bread_n will_v turn_v into_o a_o stone_n in_o such_o a_o man_n heart_n and_o it_o will_v become_v as_o hard_o as_o the_o nether_a millstone_n he_o that_o can_v sin_n though_o he_o remember_v often_o such_o a_o love_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o so_o great_a evil_n as_o be_v in_o sin_n and_o though_o he_o come_v and_o make_v engagement_n and_o profession_n of_o love_n to_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v very_o stupid_a and_o senseless_a and_o god_n withdraw_v his_o grace_n christ_n depart_v away_o from_o such_o a_o unhallowed_a and_o impudent_a creature_n must_v needs_o make_v his_o heart_n more_o sear_v and_o his_o condition_n more_o dangerous_a when_o he_o approach_v to_o a_o soul_n and_o find_v it_o a_o nest_n of_o unclean_a bird_n he_o will_v take_v the_o wing_n of_o a_o dove_n and_o fly_v away_o to_o a_o clean_a and_o white_a habitation_n or_o rather_o if_o we_o refuse_v to_o hear_v his_o law_n and_o obey_v his_o word_n which_o be_v preach_v to_o we_o he_o will_v not_o come_v to_o we_o when_o we_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o take_v this_o covenant_n into_o our_o mouth_n and_o yet_o hate_v to_o be_v reform_v and_o if_o he_o will_v not_o come_v to_o we_o what_o can_v follow_v but_o coldness_n and_o hardness_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o absence_n 6._o the_o devil_n enter_v into_o that_o heart_n which_o christ_n leave_v if_o the_o lord_n can_v find_v no_o room_n in_o we_o we_o become_v fit_a for_o seven_o more_o foul_a spirit_n than_o dwell_v in_o we_o before_o god_n leave_v man_n more_o to_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n when_o they_o offer_v such_o contempt_n unto_o his_o son_n the_o power_n of_o darkness_n rush_v with_o great_a fury_n and_o with_o a_o great_a throng_n upon_o such_o a_o person_n that_o love_v to_o be_v in_o darkness_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o such_o heavenly_a light_n the_o serpent_n may_v infuse_v his_o venom_n more_o into_o their_o spirit_n as_o well_o as_o sting_v their_o body_n and_o he_o get_v a_o strong_a title_n to_o they_o after_o they_o have_v offer_v such_o a_o affront_n and_o mockery_n to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 7._o it_o must_v needs_o be_v hard_a for_o such_o a_o person_n to_o get_v a_o pardon_n because_o he_o sin_n even_o against_o that_o blood_n by_o which_o the_o pardon_n be_v to_o be_v obtain_v upon_o what_o score_n can_v he_o sue_v for_o forgiveness_n who_o make_v so_o light_a of_o the_o covenant_n of_o forgiveness_n what_o will_v he_o plead_v for_o himself_o who_o make_v so_o little_a conscience_n of_o keep_v christ_n command_v that_o he_o break_v they_o all_o at_o once_o for_o he_o that_o do_v not_o receive_v christ_n when_o he_o be_v so_o tender_v and_o submit_v not_o himself_o to_o he_o he_o refuse_v all_o the_o gospel_n and_o reject_v all_o that_o he_o say_v i_o tell_v you_o it_o will_v cost_v a_o man_n many_o a_o tear_n and_o a_o very_a sad_a repentance_n before_o he_o obtain_v the_o mercy_n to_o wipe_v off_o those_o stain_n which_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n leave_v upon_o the_o soul_n he_o must_v be_v wash_v in_o that_o very_a blood_n which_o he_o use_v so_o irreverent_o and_o which_o he_o can_v sin_v against_o so_o bold_o and_o what_o a_o strong_a faith_n must_v he_o have_v that_o can_v think_v this_o so_o easy_o to_o be_v obtain_v let_v no_o man_n then_o approach_v hither_o that_o be_v in_o love_n with_o any_o sin_n who_o heart_n be_v not_o so_o break_v for_o his_o rebellion_n that_o he_o very_o think_v in_o his_o conscience_n he_o shall_v leave_v they_o let_v he_o bring_v nothing_o into_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n which_o his_o soul_n hate_v unless_o he_o intend_v to_o be_v worse_o than_o a_o jew_n who_o do_v not_o own_v he_o to_o be_v the_o christ_n and_o if_o any_o man_n do_v find_v upon_o good_a consideration_n that_o he_o and_o his_o sin_n be_v so_o saln_v out_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o agree_v again_o and_o therefore_o desire_v here_o to_o make_v a_o open_a defiance_n of_o they_o and_o join_v himself_o most_o solemn_o in_o a_o friendship_n with_o christ_n let_v he_o be_v infinite_o careful_a afterward_o that_o he_o do_v not_o return_v with_o a_o dog_n to_o his_o vomit_n after_o he_o have_v eat_v this_o sacred_a food_n but_o let_v i_o add_v this_o that_o i_o do_v not_o say_v all_o this_o of_o the_o danger_n that_o be_v in_o this_o thing_n that_o you_o may_v not_o come_v as_o st._n chrysostome_n speak_v but_o that_o you_o may_v not_o mere_o come_v corinth_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n hom._n 24._o in_o 1_o ad_fw-la corinth_n for_o as_o to_o come_v on_o any_o fashion_n be_v very_o dangerous_a so_o not_o to_o come_v at_o all_o be_v certain_a famine_n and_o death_n as_o he_o may_v surfeit_v and_o kill_v